E e Rehmus - The Magicians Dictionary PDF
E e Rehmus - The Magicians Dictionary PDF
E e Rehmus - The Magicians Dictionary PDF
by E. E. REHMUS
(Pseud. "Romulus")
------------------------------------------------------------------------
INTRODUCTION
Everywhere we can see now how the trappings of M/magic(k) are strewn around with
such mindless and perfunctory abandon that it's obvious to everyone that the
morning of barbarism is well advanced. Moreover, the so-called "New Age" (which
is anything but) has produced already so much over- merchandised junk and shadow
without substance, that it's clear no mere grain of salt, appearing alongside
that sea of sugar, can expect much attention.
In only the most ordinary sense are we "already" magicians. It's true that only
deliberate action which produces a visible ripple over the surface of reality is
a magical act. Nature itself endlessly engages in creatively magical acts every
moment. But what we are painfully learning for the first time is that magic
comes out of our connectedness to the world and is in no way whatsoever the
wielding of some mystical power over things from "outside" them. Thus, neither
ordinary religion , with its parched, subnatural separation from physical,
supposedly "unclean" bodies, nor science with its tedious and incessant denial
of all "taint" of self, can be called magic.
Continuing in the spirit of that Renaissantial pizzazz which began in the 1960's
to raise Hermetic studies from their immemorial grave, we are now entering a
much more psychically advanced era. . . ready, as greater and greater numbers of
seekers are putting it, for "specific" instruction, even though postmodern minds
scarcely understand the words.
Where the wise of the past and present fail to provide, I've interpolated my own
quirky insights. Avoiding as much as I can the words and concepts which are
abundantly defined elsewhere. I've made it a practice to concentrate on the more
esoteric arcana and most misunderstood philosophical or related terms. On the
other hand, there are a good many magical buzz words that everyone takes for
granted as self-evident, when the truth is, hardly anyone really understands
them at all, so I've included some of those as well.
Despite our infatuation with contemporaneity, magic must be tied to tradition -
for, once stripped of tradition, it immediately and bleakly sheds all meaning
and quickly degenerates into "black" magic, or the search for private power. In
all magic, the figures summoned, *daimones* (good and bad), are summonings from
the self, but that is not to say that they don't have their own steam and
direction.
The goal of the magician, or one might also say the alchemist, is psychic
transcendence and not just the manipulation of the material world for the
puffing up of the ego or for changing the outward face of things. The magician's
aim is to recognize that we are in now way separate from the universe and need
to reaffirm our direct and total connection to it. Therefore, we are able to
cease acting horizontally in the hopeless trap of cause and effect and can begin
acting vertically to link the celestial to the terrestrial, avoiding, if
possible, the much easier connection of the infernal to the terrestrial.
Many of us have, with monumental smugness, shoved magic into one corner,
metaphysics into another and religion into a third. Magic in particular, we've
all secretly fantasized, is a search for "powers". We tend to imagine that it's
just the childlike, fairy-tale belief in the ability to work miracles - as
though ordinary reality isn't miracle enough. Or, even worse, we act as though
magic were just another toy - a superbot, an FTL spacecraft, a cybernetic data
cruncher, a revolutionary dimension-splitter, a meta-matter transmogrifier -
that we confidently expect some great cosmic Santa Claus to deliver, once we've
achieved, say, celibate purity or some pinnacle of self-hypnosis. This is all
rather like a dog complacently assuming that you will give him the whole turkey
if he merely sits on his hind legs and limps his forepaws.
True, we've been admonished time and again that the genuine traveler shouldn't
be distracted by mere conjurings. The yogi must not succumb to the call l to
develop siddhis. And even Christ refused to be daunted by Satan's insistence
that stones are not easily turned into bread. In fact, we have been warned that
we would do better to avoid conjuring altogether. But of course warnings serve
only to sharpen all the more the appetites of callow youth. Let's grab the power
first, they say, and worry afterwards about whether we have acted wisely or not.
Such is the nature of Time that eventually it delivers all things. Such is the
nature of man that he can't wait.
Yes, there are the two famous opposing systems: "black" magic versus "white"
magic. And yes, there is a gulf between them. For the most part, however, these
labels derive from our ordinary religious background, which serves merely as a
convenient hook to fetch up the metaphysically unsophisticated. The genuine
magician is undaunted by labels. Black and white are no more than reflections of
one another.
Magic's inner meaning is more valuable than its outer glamour. If you suddenly
found a priceless diamond in the gutter that would be a perfect example of how
the ordinary world is the source of the transcendental. Unfortunately, for those
who are not initiates, such lessons go unheeded. "Ordinary" reality continues to
bore hoi polloi to death.
Madame Blavatsky, G.I. Gurdjieff, Aleister Crowley and the like were wise enough
to ignore the multitudes and to write directly to their small circles of friends
who sought truth and did not beg to be flattered. I find little reason to stray
from that course. In any case, there are but ten remaining years for the world
(as of 1989, when this was written) and it would not be seemly to waste them
trying to interface with hostile technocrats, "impious xtians", prime-time
consumer units or any of the rest of the millennial rag-tag rabble.
WARNING:
It cannot be said often enough, M/magic(k) does not tolerate belief. Therefore,
we must neither cater to popular superstition nor seek to avoid offending it.
Nor shall I apologize for exercising prejudice. Although all are potentially
suspect, despite a widespread misconception, not all religions are equally
virulent. And why should we be tolerant of intolerance? Christians refer to all
non-Christians with the prejudicial labels of "heathen" and "damned". Muslims
betray their intolerance by referring non-Muslims as "infidels". Comitas
adfabilitasque contra barbaros? But my objection to Christianity is more subtle
and harder to explain than the usual reasons people give. I object on the
grounds that Christianity per se has a habit of pretending to "live and let
live" while insinuating itself into other practices and beliefs, like a tumor,
growing until it gradually takes over entirely. It then rejects the shell, the
original teaching as having been but a poor and shameless imitation of
Christianity (as, it insists, all alternatives are) henceforth to be replaced by
the orthodox Church.
In any case, the proselytizing religions of Yeshu's Galileanism and Mahomet's
Allahism exercise vast control over the minds of hopeless billions and do more
irreparable harm to the human spirit than any force on this planet, including
nuclear fission.
2
(June 24, 1989)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
A
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AARON
Brother of Moses and the "Adept of the Adepts". The first high priest and
magician (through Jehovah's power). Introducer of the "golden calf." HPB
explains Aaron's rod, which turned the water to blood, as a magnetic pole acting
upon red lichen in fusoria.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
A'ANO'NIN
Guardian of the 26th tunnel of the Tree of Death, in Grant's teaching. "The Lord
of the Gates of Matter". Corresponds, in the Tarot, to The Devil's atu. Its
magic, indicated by the letter Ayin, is the "evil eye" or Eye of Set ("The
Diamond in the Night"). Its disease is priapism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AB
Egyptian "heart". The source of life amongst the Nilots. Considered the center
of the conscious mind. It as essential that the Ab survive death through
physical embalming, because even if the physical heart was "dead" the spirit
still had to derive its post mortem existence from it. Metaphysically, the heart
is the center of the innermost self, which is simultaneously the innermost
center of the universe, not to mention Ra, the Sun, as being the objective
counterpart.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ABBREVIATIONS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ABDUL AL-HAZRED
"Slave of the Presence". The "Mad Arab" of Damascus, poet and supposed author of
Al Azif (730 A.D.), which Lovecraft translates as the Bedouin word for the sound
of nocturnal insects or the howling of demons. All of this is fairly fanciful
Arabic. Al Azif is better known as The Necronomicon and is about the "Forgotten
Ones".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ABOMINATION OF DESOLATION
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ABRACADABRA/ABRAHADABRA
The former is the traditional magical word, the latter is Crowley's mutation,
for the sake of its "proper" numerological value (418), which was also the
number for Boleskine, his castle and for AIWASS, his Holy Guardian Angel.
Originally the intention of the word was to cause ailments to diminish and death
to be vanquished as letters were progressively removed from either end.
4
ABRACADABRA
BRACADABR
RACADAB
ACADA
CAD
A
As an amulet, therefore, it should be worn with the point downwards. Similar
traditional magical words were Shabriri (for banishing the demon of the same
name) and Ochnotinos (for diminishing fever). The Gnostics used Ablanathalba, a
palindrome, meaning "The Father hath given to us". With Crowley, however,
Abrahadabra meant "The Great Work of the aeon of Horus". (See ABRAXAS (or
Abrasax) Being the unreachable, unknowable and unmanifested "God" beyond
existence and non-existence, beyond good and evil, beyond all dualities, "he"
may be considered the ultimate synthesis. Since the Judeo-Xtian God is a monad,
He must have an opposite (Satan), in company with Zoroaster's Ahriman and
Ahuramazda, Abraxas does not require opposition.
The Gods are the original essences of Reality and as such are limited to the
manifestation of the processes of Nature or Subnature. Therefore, they are
necessarily below Abraxas.
Budge is the only Egyptologist who presents us with the Egyptian word:
Abraskkiaks (Leemans Papyrus, III, 210- ). Probably derived from the same word
as ABRACADABRA (Heb. Ha-b'rakah, "the blessing" or "the sacred name"). He is the
ultimate God beyond good and evil (for that matter he is even beyond being and
non-being). On ancient Gnostic amulets he appears as rooster-headed, with two
serpents for legs and bearing in one hand a whip and in the other a shield with
the word 'IAO'. Occasionally he appears as a charioteer. He is the source of the
365 emanations of the Divine Pleroma. The Creator God (see IALDABAOTH) is much
inferior, hardly more than a Demiurge. It is said that, in order to express the
important number 365 ("The Divine Cycle"). In Greek letters, Abraxas has that
many Gods or "aeons" (or "Archons") under him.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ABYSS
The gulf between the individual mind and Cosmic Consciousness, between
manifestation and non-manifestation, or between life and death. The plane that
the magician must cross on his own, without any assistance whatever.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ACCIDIE
Heedlessness, torpor, sloth. In the 14th and 15th Centuries it was a malady
generally ascribed to hermits and monks who fasted too much and fell into mental
prostration. Later it gradually came to mean simply the common sin of sloth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ACELDAMA
The name of the land that was purchased with Judas' thirty pieces of silver.
Means "field of blood."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ACTEON
A Hunter who chanced to see the chaste goddess, Diana, nude in her midnight
bath. Diana, being also the bright light of the full Moon (as Hecate is the dark
5
of the moon) and its nearly hallucinative brilliance, he was immediately struck
by anamnesis and "remembered" the naked omnipotence of pantheistic divinity in
all creatures, including himself - so that, in this amazing illumination, he
literally became one with everything, including the stag he had been chasing,
whereupon his own dogs (not being in on the revelation) tore him apart.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
'AD
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ADONAI
(Greek Adonis). Hebrew for "Lord", but in Thelemic practice it can stand for the
HGA, the Augoeides or "Higher Self".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ADYTUM
A temple, oracular shrine of holy of holies which only priests may enter.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AEON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
6
Thus for "materialization" we'd need new vocabularies to correspond to the hooks
(vavs) of the æthyrs. The build-up would be similar, but the "Aires" would now
be "Earthes". For instance, PAZ (In Enochian, "Be as they"), might be PAGZ ("Be
NOT as they").
Since the Aires are all 3-lettered, presumably Earthes would be 4-lettered,
Waters 2-lettered and Fyres 1-lettered. However, if the Ayres all have 3-
lettered names, there is a reason for that. The other elementals might have
different numbered names only if we think of them as separate and perhaps the
4th is simply the "understood" rest of the quaternity. At any rate, now we see
why there are only Aires. We'd better learn their meanings before we attempt any
materializations.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AFFA
The name of an ET intelligence said to have contacted the U.S. Army sometime in
the early 1980's, apparently not one of the guests in the Secret Exchange
Program.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AFFECTLESS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGE OF AQUARIUS
The (approximately) 2000 year cycle of the Precession of the Equinoxes and the
end of the Piscean or Christian aeon. Characterized by Humanism as opposed to
religious dogma. Its beginning is sometime in the 19th-21st Centuries. In the
year 1995, Uranus , the ruler of Aquarius, after entering that sign for the
first time since 1920, must remain there well into the 21st Century. According
to some authorities, however, the Piscean Age did not begin until 80 A.D. and so
we cannot observe effects of the New Aeon prior to 2068. Such a view ignores
common sense, because macroscopic celestial events cannot be earth-synchronized
precisely and all ages overlap considerably. Moreover, the signs of the zodiac
do not correspond to the constellations and if we force astrology to conform to
the positions of the constellations we jam it into an unbecoming strait-jacket.
The signs were never intended to correspond to the positions of the
constellations and are of uniform length to accommodate solar/lunar mansions
within 360 degrees. As in determining degrees and aspects in a horoscope, so the
Grand Horoscope of the Universe must be interpreted with wisdom as well as with
mathematical exactitude.
The Ages are derived from the fact that the Great Year, or Platonic Year, is
26,000 years long, which roughly divides into twelve periods, twelve being
conveniently (though inaccurately) the number or zodiacal signs. A more accurate
division, of course, would be 13. (See NEWTIME).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGE OF HORUS
Another 2000-year cycle beginning in 1904 when Crowley received the Book of the
Law from Aiwass (some say the age began with the birth of Crowley's son). Stands
for constant progress. Horus grows from a helpless infant to the highest seat of
7
the gods, whence integrating with Ra. Horus, as the impulse to manifest, is the
constant enemy of his brother, Seth, who represents the inexorable dragging down
of negation and nothingness.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGE OF ISIS
Precedes Age of Osiris. The Wife-Sister of Osiris seeks his bones throughout the
universe, finding all but the phallus. All this cosmic traveling suggests that
Isis must be identified with Sirius, the Dog Star.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGE OF MAAT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGE OF OSIRIS
Equivalent to the dying Age of Pisces. God of vegetation and cycles. Osiris is
very earthy (compare the Capricorn birth of X). Osiris is also a Christ-figure,
who, though murdered by Typhon, cut to pieces and his bones scattered in the
Nile, yet was reassembled and born again. Osiris, in short, is the Conquest of
Death, whereas Horus, in a more subtle sense, is the understanding that Life and
Death are equivalent. Vita quidem nomen vita, opus autem mors est.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGE OF PISCES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AGON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Since some believe that the virus is man-made, specifically designed to attack
the most important alternative to procreation (male homosexuality), we cannot
see it as responding to psychic suggestions to change its habits. If it were a
naturally occurring life-form, it would be automatically part of the
evolutionary stream and quite attuned, even ready for "mental" implementation of
punctuated morphogenesis. We are beginning to see that this is indeed a "war"
and learning at the same time that war at every level derives from a basic
misunderstanding of human social interaction and hardly occurs at all within the
biosphere itself.
Evolution is neither a battle for the survival of the fittest, nor is it the
chaotic result of random mutations. We now know that the origin of species
proceeds in cooperation with and as part of the conscious continuum of all life.
Evolution, when the time is right, moves by quantum leaps to sudden new stages,
as if by common consent. It's only through human interference that some single,
8
bizarre weed winds up choking everything else out. In the highly unnatural case
of the HIV virus, what we are seeing is a device specifically designed to
pollute all the streams of life at once (generation, nurture and maintenance).
It is a quite human-like biological tyrant bent on specific genocide.
In studying Sheldrake's "punctuated evolution" we suddenly understand why our
intuition has already told us that the HIV virus was man-made (or engineered).
As a naturally-occurring genetic leap, HIV is too fantastic to consider. Even if
abrupt evolutionary leaps were the rule, not the exception, and even if
evolution itself is part of the omni-conscious sphere of synchronous reality-
alternation, it's still too giant a biodic jump for a virus suddenly to decide
to take up residence within the human DNA factory merely in order to bypass that
annoying (to it!) "somatic individuation" phase. Viruses don't become that
sophisticated that quickly. It's the equivalent of the next generation of the
human race suddenly to be born with fully-functioning wings sprouting out of
everyone's shoulder blades.
The theory, or course, amongst bio-metaphysicians, is that the body is merely a
highly practical mechanism for the housing and passing on of the genetic code.
One of the body's more clever defenses is the brain, designed to repair itself,
built to last at least twice as long as any other organ and encased in a hard,
nearly impregnable shell (the skull). But the cerebrum isn't just a defender of
the body. It has, so to speak, a mind of its own and its own goals preempt the
instincts. What's more, cerebral goals conflict with the goals of the genes.
AIDS and the whole contemporary world of the 90's - with its pollution, rain
forest depletions, baby boom, etc. - constitute the casualties of a genetic war
directed specifically against the cortex, occurring on a deeply subnatural level
of the global collective unconscious.
As there are mental and spiritual planes, so there are various material planes.
The "common consent" of the whole earth consciousness has been shattered in our
time and the result is an insane interplanary (sic) war between the goals of the
DNA and the goals of the human brain. Ideally, these goals should coincide, as
with planned eugenics. Instead, we have mindless acquiescence to the genetic
urge to procreate at any cost - regardless of the hideous consequences of
overpopulation. Genetic consciousness knows only bodily success. It has no way
of perceiving the larger context which is visible to the cortex: pollution,
famine, despair, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AIN
The Hebrew version of "the Void". Nothingness (i.e. "The Other Universe" whence
this one derives).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AIN SOF
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AIR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AIWASS/AIWAZ
9
Crowley's alter ego. One of the 3 keywords of the Aeon of Horus (with Thelema
and Agapé). Its number is 418. Aiwass has been attributed to Satan or Lucifer.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AKASHA
The fifth tattwa (Hindu Element). The black egg of the spirit, i.e. the ether,
whereby everything is written down. In the Akashic records, found on every
plane, no event, however insignificant, goes unmarked. If time be not a closed,
self-repeating cycle, then the Akashic Records are of infinite length, having no
beginning. The Guardians of the Akashic records have been equated with Thoth and
Hermes as well as with Mnemosyne and the Muses. These were the guardians of the
Well of Memory, from which the initiate must drink. In Norse mythology, the
Guardian of the Well of knowledge, beside the root of the world-tree, Yggdrasil,
was Mimir (to whom Odin paid his eye).
HPB describes Akasha as "The Second Differentiation of evolving substance Chaos,
Aether, Matter of the Monadic Plane...often used where chaos or aether would be
indicated. Akasha is located in the sphere of Vibratory Sound, whence all auras
derive.
Lest those who feel they have contributed positively or negatively to the
Akashic records be prideful on the one hand or discouraged on the other, it
should be understood that all such actions are dualistic and the expansion of
the darkness automatically ensures the expansion of the light and vice-versa.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALAYA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALCHEMY
Chemistry is the child of the Alchemists. It's the legacy of "the puffers,"
those charlatan imitators who tried to fake the production of real gold. Alchemy
was called "the Hermetic Science" because it supposedly began with Hermes (or
Thoth). Paracelsus saw it chiefly as a means of producing medicine. The
classical goals of Alchemy, however, have been to transmute lower metals into
gold, to prolong life via an elixir, to search for the Mysterium Magnum, to
create a homunculus and to find a universal solvent. This was to be accomplished
via the manufacture or discovery of the Lapis Philosophorum, The Sophic
Hydrolith, "Our Mercury" or "Philosopher's Stone." Other names for the "Stone"
(achieved through the hieros gamos "marriage" of opposites) are: Virgin's Milk,
Cock's Egg, Dry Water and similar contradictions. Generally, a cryptic
vocabulary is used to disguise psychological and materialistic parallels, e.g.
"red lion", "nigredo", etc. There are supposedly seven stages of the alchemical
Great Work, which are symbolical as well as chemical/metallurgical steps:
Calcination, Putrefaction, Solution, Distillation, Conjunction, Sublimation and
10
Philosophic Congelation. There are also minor, intermediary steps, such as
Coloratio, Corrosio, Ceratio, Extractio, Separatio etc.
We should bear in mind, however, that true alchemists consider the Great Work to
be not merely aureofaction or the transmogrification of matter, but rather, as
Alice Bailey points out "to transfer consciousness to one of the higher
vehicles..." In other words, the integrity of the inner transformation is more
important than any flashy theatrical results.
According to some theories alchemy is the raising of vibrations. The vegetable
kingdom resonates at the lowest level. In between vibrates the animal kingdom.
It is for this reason that the extraction of plant essence is easy, while the
extraction of mineral essence is extremely difficult. This is also why man,
situated midway between the two kingdoms, can, by simultaneously distilling his
own essence, assist the mineral.
From a psychological standpoint, any work, on the most general level, is the
process of separating the important from the non-essential and the decision as
to whether to continue further to distill that residue to any degree of
perfection and finally the determination of when the whole is of a piece and
completely finished. This process can apply to a work of art, to self-analysis,
to the quest for the elixir of life or even, for that matter, to metallurgy -
because (according to the Emerald Tablet) all things are one.
It is no accident or coincidence, for instance, that there is a correlation
between the atomic numbers of modern physics and the ancient progression of
metals in their metamorphosis into gold:
Lead 82
Thallium 81
Mercury 80
Gold 79
Platinum 78
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALICORN
Unicorn horn. Another corpse in the bloody wake of Belief. Certain superstitious
parts of the world already crowded to the point of asphyxiation (chiefly China,
supplied by Islam) still insist that powdered rhinoceros horn will give them the
one thing they crave above opium and gold, reproductive fertility. Thus, to
screw their propagating mania to the sticking point, vast nations will spare
nothing to render this unique beast extinct, to turn the unhappy pachyderm into
a fable.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALLAH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALLAT
Ancient tribal Bedouin goddess whom Muhammad drove out of the Ka'aba.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALLITERATION
11
Beginning every word with the same letter. A means of generating poetic
expression or magical cachets, e.g. *Biceps, bestiaque blatimus bibiendi biblioi
Beelzebubi ("By swallowing demonic books, we, the two-headed and the beasts,
commence to babble.").
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ALMUCHEFI
Roger Bacon's magic mirror - for reading the future - composed in accordance
with the laws of perspective under the influence of a benign constellation and
after corpus modificatum per alchemiam est.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AL USSA
Another ancient, angelic goddess whom Mahomet drove out of the Ka'aba.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMBROSIA
The Greeks confused nectar with ambrosia exactly as we do. Originally it was
thought that this "drink (not food!) of the gods" derived from some such word as
ambrotos, that is "immortal", similar to Hindu amrita, "deathless". We now know
that the source is the Greek word for "blood" or "gore," brotos (a cognate of
our word "blood") referring to the blood sprinkled upon altars and idols in
ancient times - as our word, "to bless", derives from Anglo-Saxon bletsian "to
sprinkle with blood."
This, combined with haoma > AM (Gk. hemo), formed the bloody "unguent" of
religious ritual.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMDO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMENTA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMENTI
In Theosophy, the Realm of God. "Those only who know the names of the seven
janitors will be admitted into Amenti forever", i.e. those who have passed
through the seven races of each round - otherwise they will rest in the lower
fields. In Amenti one becomes pure spirit, for eternity; while in Aanroo the
soul of the spirit or the defunct is devoured each time by Uraeus - "the
12
Serpent, Son of the Earth". Soon the astral body 'fades out' and the soul quits
the fields of Aanroo and goes on earth in any shape one likes to assume." - HPB,
The Secret Doctrine.
The Egyptian who entered Amenti was led by Anubis to Osiris's court of 42
judges, whence he either passed on to Aaru or was thrown to the hippocrocodile,
Ammit. In Amenti the Egyptian soul was required to till the fields and for this
reason kings had buried with them in their tombs figures called Ushabti who were
translated into replicas of the king who could do the work for him.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMITABHA
The Buddha who protects the present era. In Japan he is the Buddha of Truth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMPRODIAS
His disease is diarrhea. His path is that of reversal. Since 11 is the general
number for magic and since 11 is also the number of Daath on the Tree of Life,
i.e. the "non-existent" sephirah and the gateway to the "other side", Amprodias
also has The Fool's number. Zero (the Void) is the number that precedes One
(Manifestation). The Zeroeth Level is also the level that precedes even the must
elementary level of consensual reality. That is it even precedes solipsism and
madness.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AMULET
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANALOGY
13
Eliphas Levi considers analogy to be the root principle of all wisdom, the
mainspring of science and the link between "finite and infinite". At bottom is a
fundamental Unity and rising out of that, everything is connected to everything
else (only superficially via analogy). Balance and harmony derive from the
analogy of opposites. In the Orient, this same balance is the basis of the
martial arts, such as jiu-jitsu.
The modern temperament has made idols of pragmatism and progress, while
rejecting analogy to the backwaters of fable and poesie. We equate metaphysical
depth with children's stories and make simple-minded mechanics the criterion of
mature wisdom.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANAMNESIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
(Hakim Bey's term). The quantum social paradigm, with decidedly anti-
authoritarian flavor. The old "measuring" consensus of objective reality and
relativism must now make way for post-modern, "shamanic" quantum mechanics.
Chaos expects an alchemical social order, a world accepting of all alternate
universes with ranomicity at the center, particles moving backwards in time,
non-locality throughout, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANASTASIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANCIENT OF DAYS
Supreme judge, another name for "The Almighty" of conventional and pedestrian
religion.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANGAKOK/ANGAKUT
Amongst the Eskimos there are two Gods, a God of Good and a God of Evil. The
good God, Pirksama, is given scant attention, since good takes care of itself,
whereas the evil God must be dealt with. His name is Angakok and all witch
doctors are named after him. When, therefore, Angakok comes to visit, he
frequently meets with criticism, even when he comes to help the community. The
Angakok derive their power to hear and restore life from the polar bear.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANGELS
ANIMAL MAGIC
Jacob von Uexküll has shown that animals live in quite separate numinous worlds
defined by the nature of their species. The elephant lives in an elephant
universe, the butterfly in a butterfly world. They inhabit separate spheres of
consciousness. Says Uexküll, "when a dog runs, it moves its legs. When a sea
urchin runs, it is moved by its legs." Uexküll even distinguishes between acts
of individual superstition (or "ritual") - bird pecking at empty pavement, dog
licking newly washed dinner bowl - and genuine "species environment" magic that
involves entire herds or flocks, performing purely symbolic acts.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANKH-F-N-KHONSU
"His life is in Khonsu" (that is, in the Moon God of Thebes), title of a high
priest in Temple of Amen-Ra, the sun god, 26th dynasty. Crowley's former
incarnation. His stele in the Cairo museum of 1904 was numbered "666".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANODOS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANOMIE
15
Lack of purpose, identity or ethical values in a person or society;
Disorganization; Rootlessness. This pervasive poison underlies contemporary
inability to alter the course of our downward-spiralling civilization.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANSIBLES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANTHROPOPHUISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANTHROPOSOPHY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANTI-CHRISTIAN STRATEGIES
"My earlier views of the unsoundness of the Christian scheme of salvation and
the human origin of the scriptures have become clearer and stronger with
advancing years," said Abraham Lincoln, a century and a half ago. "What are the
fruits of Christianity? Bigotry, superstition and persecution," said President
James Madison some two centuries ago. "For seventeen hundred years the Christian
sect has done nothing but harm" said Voltaire 230 years ago. Quotations of this
sort by the wisest of thinkers and leaders, extending as they do back through
the millennia, should serve as a skull and crossbones over the door of the
church.
Xtianity, obviously, is the worst of all worlds (with the possible exception of
Islam). On the one hand, it exhorts its believers to live vicariously, to reach
for nothing, inasmuch as Christ has done all the work of redemption for them. In
this way it thoroughly discourages individualism, especially in its most
creative aspects. On the other hand, it pledges salvation to the dregs of
mankind - the lowest ranks of morality - to the mindless and the vicious. Thus
it espouses egoism at the cheapest level.
Arrogant Xtians are fond of saying, "You can't have it both ways." By that they
mean that you can't accept the interconnectedness of everything and at the same
time believe in the separation of the individual. But Xtianity, founded as it is
on the veneration of stupidity, has always confused paradox with inconsistency.
The wise man leans neither on belief nor on non-belief. The whole issue of
God/Not-God is unnecessarily dichotomous, as is our analysis of
morality/immorality. The Either-Or world is dangerous. Indeed, it is so
dangerous that even to proceed in a line midway between this Scylla and
Charybdis is to hem oneself in by unwanted limitations. "God" is a word that has
yet to be defined and even the certainty of divine singularity vs. plurality is
debatable. It is a common conceit that monotheism is a step is a step forward
from polytheism and one which some serious metaphysicians are finally beginning
16
to question. The initiate may declare that there is but one "God", but he means
that in a quite different sense from the common notion of exclusivity.
Monotheism (see MONOLATRY) always leads to monolithism. We are one another only
be differing from one another. It is uniqueness that makes us divine. It is
quite possible to deny the existence of "God" without elevating man (in his
present condition) to apotheosis. There is, for example, the teaching of
Pantheism, in which all plants, animals and, in fact, matter itself, are all
equally God. This is also one God.
Anti-christians are admittedly defensive about "Salvation through Christ". First
of all, non-Christians insist, there can be no salvation without one's own
immolation - not the crucifiction of some 2000 year old personage of legend.
Secondly, Christ is a type of supraconsciousness already potential, but
undeveloped, in all men and women. It must not be confused with the self-pitying
figures depicted in stained glass windows. The Christ level of consciousness is,
in fact, certainly not available to the average, plastic-coated, postmodern
illiterate, whose vision scarcely extends beyond that of an insect and whose
tenacity is no firmer than a worm's pull. Therefore, to make salvation available
to all men on a believe-as-you-go basis is idiotic. And finally, the Galilean
mode is only one of many modes of consciousness - most of which are a lot more
interesting. (See 666.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANTI-OCCULT STRATEGIES
Because of Hitler's occult interests, anti-occultists have tried time and again
to establish that all those from whom he adopted his twisted ideas were
themselves fascist and racist. Similarly, in the 1930's everyone was tagged with
either the Communist or Fascist label, whether deservedly or not. Attempts to
link Hitler to the sympathies of Aleister Crowley, HPB, Jung and the rest are
constantly being forced upon gullible and confused people. The fact is, the
Nazis used anyone and anything they could to gain power, as do all villains.
Accusations against the occult, however, invariably come down not to anti-
semitism practices, but, on the contrary, to a tendency to question Christian
authority. Even Nietzsche, the 3rd Reich's most esteemed philosopher, though a
strong enemy, it turns out, of the Catholic Church, was deeply opposed to Anti-
semitism.
Jung's essay in 1936 on Wotan is often cited in which he simply stated that the
God of the German people was not Jesus, but Wotan. That the Nazis could take
inspiration from that is hardly Jung's fault, as he merely pointed out the
obvious. Evil imagination can take what it needs from any source and we might
with far more justification have accused the Vatican of Pro-Fascist tendencies.
The charge against Mme. Blavatsky is equally irresponsible. A careful scrutiny
of her writings will reveal a deep and abiding affection for the jews, alone
with an equally strong antipathy for Xtianity. Attempts to link Blavatsky to
"master race" ideas would seem to fare somewhat better, until we learn that she
considered the Aryan, Semitic and Turanian branches to have derived from a
common pre-Abrahamic source. And when she speaks of races, she really refers to
the reincarnated human race itself.
It is true that Gurdjieff spent the war in Paris and survived the German
occupation, but he did not survive through collaboration and he undoubtedly put
himself in great danger by devoting his time to caring for elderly, impoverished
refugees. As for Crowley, the fact that Mussolini shut down his Cefalu Lodge and
that the German Gestapo put his Golden Dawn Society on the "Enemies of the
Reich" list speaks for itself.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANTISEMITISM
17
Since the occult comprises a huge number of different arcane studies, it is hard
to see how its being associated with such an unlikely and general characteristic
as anti-semitism could arise. It is, in fact, a complete contradiction of its
origin. Most of this misconception began in 1920 with a certain Miss Stoddard
and Dr. and Mrs. Felkin, who were the temple heads of the Stella Matutina. Miss
Stoddard felt herself persecuted by "black Rosicrucians" and turned to Nesta
Webster. Ms. Webster, in turn, a right wing fanatic, accused all these
organizations of being agents of the International Jewish conspiracy -
especially the Golden Dawn and Stella Matutina. Because of its association with
the Qabalah and its rejection of orthodox Xtianity, the Church is always ready
to accuse the Occult of being pro-Jewish. Soon after this, however, Hitler, who
considered Xtianity to be merely a Jewish offspring, turned to the neo-pagan
elements of the occult. This Nazi endorsement, for most people, tarred all
occult studies with the same tainted brush. The popular mind, in its total and
abysmal ignorance of such things to start with, sees no contradiction in
condemning the accused of the very crime of the accuser!
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ANUBIS
The dog or jackal-headed Egyptian God who served as guide to the underworld and
weigher of the dead man's heart for its truthfulness.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOCALYPSE
We are aware that the muslims insist that there can be no Universal Eschatonic
Implosion until the world has endured "40 years of rain." We would remind them
that we have endured *more* than forty years of the "rain" of nuclear radiation
and pollution. Aztec prophesies place the end of the world in the 20th Century
(who can doubt it?). The Great Pyramid is said to contain, in its mystical
measurements, similar predictions in stone of which the last is Sept. 17, 2001
A.D. Two thousand is commonly believed by western civilization to be the year of
the Eschaton. The date given by Nostradamus, on the other hand, is slightly pre-
millennial: 1999. This is just 13 years prior to the end of the great 160,000-
year Mayan Cycle and Terence McKenna's Timescape Zero (based on Ancient Chinese
cycles), both at 2012 C.E. And although many others cite 2020, there are
interesting reasons for seizing on 1999.
First of all, there is a scientific reason. As meteorologists have noted, the
11-year sunspot cycles which serve to heat the earth, have not only been
increasing in severity, they have progressively exacerbated the greenhouse
effect. This resulted, during the drought of 1988, in the first of the summer-
long record-breaking temperatures that continue to plague us. In '99 the sunspot
activity could well have a cataclysmic effect.
Metaphysically, however, there are more compelling reasons. Since the exact
interface betweeen the end of the Christian Aeon of Pisces and the beginning of
the Humanist Aeon of Aquarius is impossible to pipoint, we are thrown back on
sheer numerology. 1+9+9+9 = 28 = 2+8 = 10; numerologically and Pythagoras-wise
ten is the number of perfect completion. In other words 1999 is the natural
culmination of the Aeon, whereas 2000 is simply a thousandfold manifestation of
the Duality: Two - that epitome of evil amongst numbers (from the cosmic point
of view, the end of the world isn't necessarily evil). The date, January 16,
1999 adds up to 9. That date is also Julian Day number 2,451,195, which adds up
to 9 as well. Ironically enough, most computer projections of disaster, based on
18
current ecological trends, ozone depletion, demographic patterns, etc. predict
the peak somewhere between January, 1999 and September, 2013 - by which time the
population of the earth will be nine billion and the "end" of the human
yardstick on this planet will have come.
And although the Bible stipulates that "no man knoweth the day or the hour" of
the last day, I do not hesitate to name the 9th second of the 9th minute of the
9th hour of January 16, 1999 as the eschaton (or the 9th day of the 9th month
September).
As one of the Archons of the Ending Aeon, however, I have chosen 999 as my
personal sigil, not 1999, because I want to ally myself with the spirit of the
ending process, rather than with the End itself. Moreover, from an opitimistic
point of view, 999 is qabalistically virginal - it has nothing written on it.
Yet I see no reason to dispute '99 as the Climax of the Apocalypse, and I take
that most useful point of the Eschaton as the date of my own eschaton-count. My
Newtime (13 month) calendar begins approximately on the winter solstice of 2000
(Newtime Year Zero), displacing Gregorian time forever. Hence I count forward
from 1999, calling 1997 "Year Minus 3", etc.
It should be noted that "end of the world" predictions are always cropping up.
For instance, there was Rev. Whisenant's eschatonic prediction that September
13, 1988 would be the Great Day. Newspapers were gleeful in reporting that the
date came and went. What they failed to realize was that 1988, in fact, the
beginning of the end - since it was in that year that the greenhouse effect was
finally accepted by the planetary powers and acknowledged as the harbinger of
the end. If nothing else, 1988 was the year in which the Shroud of Turin was
finally pronounced an error by the Vatican. At any rate, the good Rev's
numerology may have been naive and the particular fate he chose may have had
little synchronistic sparkle, but his prediction wasn't entirely off the wall.
Isn't it always the 11th hour? At least sub specie aeternitatis?
But with the 20th Century we leave eternity behind and enter the dimensional
worlds. The date Whisenant gave has another meaning. As you know, we stand in
the slough of time and at the perimeters of various magico/religious aeons -
including the multitudinous segments of the Galilean era - all of which end at
different points. The prophecies are fulfilled at different velocities in
different ways. The world "ends" perennially because "World" derives from Anglo-
Saxon wer-µld ("Man's Era" or "human time.")
Part of our confusion has to do with the fact that we tend to use "the world"
and "the earth" as though they were synonyms. The earth is merely one of the
stages on which the drama of the world is enacted. From the Olympian point of
view, the end of a world isn't a tragedy. Everything has its †ld. Even the gods
have their time. Even the dinosaurs had an "Age" so the toymakers tell us. The
word for "world", in every language, is invariably linked to the notion of time.
Arabic duniya, "the present (world)", Hebrew olam "eternity", Latin mundus,
originally a division into sections (of time), like the Greek kosmos. Religion
is always, sooner or later, part of that chronometry.
It amazes me that people, especially gullible Xtians, can be so blind as to
expect everything to go on as it has done for millions of years when the end
has, in fact, arrived. By now it should be clear even to rotting elephants and
establishment flakes that the fulfillment of the prophesies is at hand. Even
technocratic corporationism concedes that any time between now and the early
21st Century pollution, population, drought, disease and famine will have hit
their strides (the "four horsemen" as the four elements: polluted air, sewage-
laden water, barren earth, radiocative fire). Therefore 2000 also marks the
beginning of the Age of Aquarius and the official end of the Piscean "Age of
Jesus". After that date the Christians (all of whom by then will have been swept
up into the arms of their Redeemer) will find themselves, or so asserts self-
styled Neo-Xtian, Constance Cumbey, "preserved in their own bubble of spiritual
sterility on the dimensional shelf of an alternate reality," where they may
eternally contemplate the wonder of their salvation. Meanwhile, mankind's post-
holocaustic, enlightened remnant (should such a remnant, by any miracle, remain)
will be free to move ahead...to? Incidentally, by the word "holocaust" I do not
refer to war but to the destruction of the biosphere by the ravages of unchecked
human growth.
19
For remarks on the return of Christ or "Second Coming" (see PAROUSIA).
Meanwhile, the elect, who are still being sacrificed, already inhabit the New
Jerusalem. The safe and sound remainder are not saved at all, despite their
belief. They call themselves Xtians, but they are Philistines. The zealous
guardians of the faith are precisely those about whom Matthew was shouting: "Not
everyone who saith unto me, Lord, Lord shall enter into the Kingdom of Heaven!",
and of whom Mark said, "But woe to them that are with child, and to them that
give suck in those days." Those who remain are increasingly damned to the hell
that earth is henceforth becoming. September 13, 1988 was the last day before it
would be too late to begin the task of repairing the biosphere and reversing
daily descent to terracide. So the jubilant laughter of Whisenant's scoffers
begins to sound increasingly hollow, doesn't it?
Obviously, there are many of us who, though raised in the Xtian tradition, can
view the Apocalyptic experience which the world is undergoing even now, without
falling gibbering to our knees in a final paroxysm of millennial conversion. . .
No matter what happens henceforth, will retain our Neo-Gnostic and Neo-Pagan
allegiances and avoid the horror of "Salvation."
Other cultures are more confrontational. Coinciding with the Xtian Apocalypse is
the Hopi ending of the "Fourth World". In their system, evolution produces new
strengths but also creates new bad habits which must periodically be burned
away. Those who have not been corrupted will become the seed people of the next
world. Hindus and Yogis (q.v.) rather than living in the world, tend to think of
themselves as living in an "age" - at present, that age is the evil "Kali Yuga"
(quite similar, in fact, to our own "apocalyptic era" and not necessarily
lengthier). The Chinese also live in an older world. As of this writing (1988),
this is the year 4686 for them. And for the Jews it's 5748. But the Mayans
(q.v.) dwell in almost inconceivably vast ages, called baktuns and the current
one ends in 2012, our time. The "Harmonic Convergence" of July, 1987, marked the
entry, for the Mayans, into the final lustrum of the penultimate 20-year period,
before the "hotting up" time of 1992, which is the beginning of the final 20
years of a 160,000 year cycle!
The "world" is, in a very real sense, however, the creation of those who inhabit
it. Thus, when our forefathers created the United States, they quite
deliberately and correctly referred to this as a "new world" and gave the Great
Seal the designation NOVUS ORDO SECLORUM ("New Order of the Ages"), which you
can still read on every dollar bill. But every maker of a "new" world, whether
secular or religious, brings in his own "Age." The makers of the R_publique
Fran_aise, after the Revolution of 1789, even came up with a brand new calendar
to mark their "new age," complete with new names for the months. Anton LaVey,
high priest of the "San Francisco Church of Satan", proclaimed 1966 as the
beginning of the "New Satanic Age". Jesus Christ, arriving at the beginning of
the Piscean Age, brought with him an automatic 2000-year non-renewable lease on
time, which runs out in this century, the beginning of the Aquarian Age.
Magicians also fabricate their own elaborate times - Aleister Crowley, for
instance, began his "Age of Horus" in 1904. Moreover, although it might be
expected to have ended at his death in 1947, his followers, seeing him as an
immortal, still maintain Crowley's "Thelemic" calendar in that system, 1996 C.E.
would be AN 72.
Crowley's aeon was itself superseded in 1947 (the year of the saucers) when the
doorway to the Hell of Universe B was opened by Jack Parsons and L. Ron Hubbard,
whence the "Forgotten Ones" are now penetrating this world.
In 1980 Mickey Mouse and Jesus joined forces to end personal liberty in the
United States (the end of the Democratic Party forever). In 1983 the Hopis
announced the end of the 5th World - henceforth man would be obliged to boost
his own stock, somehow. In July of 1987, the world entered the final lustrum of
the penultimate katun of the Mayan aeon - another time of tribulation. 1992 was
the beginning of yet another 20-year battle of armageddon. On January 6, 1999
Julian Day 2,415,195, the world will end by Nostradamus's calculation. Few will
notice, perhaps, sind the "end" refers merely to the official passing of the
Galilean Age and the world will be so desperately struggling to survive that
there will be little time for outmoded messiahs.
20
Zoroaster, who died in 1000 B.C., will be reborn and complete the end of
futility and Ahriman's rule. His seed at the bottom of a lake, it was
prophesied, would thrice conceive maidens at three millennial points. The final
chapter in the Zoroastrian cycle and yet another eschaton in our time.
Finally, it should be noted, in 2012, Terence McKenna's Timescape reaches
Absolute Zero, the point of infinite novelty (See AUTOPOETIC LAPIS). And,
interestingly, Jung also predicted the outer limit as occurring approximately
fifty years after his death, which was in 1961.
You will understand that these 'end of the world' dates constitute a map of
reality, but are obviously not Reality itself (apart from the fact that there is
no "reality", as such). One doesn't necessarily visit every town on the map. We
can choose to live out our allotted span to 1999 or 2012, and perhaps save the
world, after all, or we can commit mass suicide beforehand in any of a hundred
different ways, thus escaping the horror that is building up. The date of the
Apocalypse isn't important. What matters is its immediacy. We have to understand
that we've reached the outer limit of our dimension - THERE IS NO FUTURE - or at
least very little. Like the amoeba in his drop of water it's time to turn away
from the edge and move back to the center.
At any rate, by now it should be clear that we're moving quickly, not only
metaphysically and synchronistically, but literally into the charged nexus of
all the "ending aeons", into a kind of central transformer which is approaching
its limit like an overworked fuse. The task of the archons of the ending aeons
is to guide the confused through the wreckage of our disintegrating society.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOCATASTASIS
A closed reincarnated loop wherein the same lifetime is reexperienced over and
over again with no alteration of details. Says Nicoli in "Living Time", "...it
is in life that we have to 'perfect' ourselves. If we limit 'this life' to one
single journey between birth and death there is not enough time. People give up
trying just because of this appearance of things. They do not bend the life
round in a circle, but leave the whole matter to the 'hereafter'. We cannot
grasp that beyond the 'end' lies the beginning. Natural understanding will not
conceive this. It can only conceive that beyond the end lies either nothingness
or something entirely new. Beyond our life we meet - our life. We cannot turn in
any other direction! Plato did not believe that the dimension of time in which
life occured was absolutely apocatastic or needed to be "traversed endlessly
without change." But to continue... "If the same time recurs and one remembers
the same moment and changes something belonging to one's former experience of
that moment, must it not follow that one changes what has been done in the
former experience of that moment, because the time is the same?"
Thus it is always the same life that we repeat, but it can be an eternal, self-
polishing jewel or self-perfecting work of art. On the other hand, if we so
choose, it can be no more than a dreary and monotonously unvarying routine.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOLLONIUS OF TYANA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOPHIS
21
("The Destroyer"). Ancient left-hand adversary, Set. KG says he is Set in his
"Ophidian" (serpent) form. A huge Nilotic serpent that attempted to devour Ra,
he figures strongly in the left-hand path. Also "Apopsi".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOPSI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APORIA
The state of not knowing which way to turn. Philosophical doubt or confusion
arising from the difficulty of reconciling contradictions or incomplete ideas.
From Gk. aporos "impassable, perplexing".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOTHEOSIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
APOTROPAIC
Lit. "turning away", descriptive of any protective device (such as garlic worn
around the neck to fend off vampires). It applies to the "Eye of Horus", which
is a wooden phallus used to ward off the "evil eye". All apotropaics, however,
are defenses against some sort of "eye" and the purpose of such an object is to
engage the attention of said eye and thereby detour its malevolence. Hence, the
more startling or original the device, the better.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AQUARIUS
The 11th sign, the number of wizardry - electronic as well as esoteric. The sign
of astronomy, no less than astrology, and above all the sign of independence and
service to the world. The new precessional beginning of the zodiac, heading the
New Age. It is the emblem and inspiration of "Man": "Henceforth the Son of Man
appeareth in the heavens..." In 1929 Jung wrote that we would enter the first
star of Aquarius in 1940, adding "That would be the turning point. We may look
for a new development about that time." The fact that 1940 marked the entry into
a lustrum that encompassed the nadir of humanity indicates that the "Age of Man"
is the Kali Yuga.
Famous Aquarians are Lincoln, Thomas Paine, Franklin D. Roosevelt, Edison,
Lindbergh, Dickens, and Jules Verne.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARACHNE
The Spider. 13th month of the proposed "Newtime" calendar to begin at the winter
solstice of 2000 A.D. From a possible corruption of the early pagan or Druidic
22
"Aranea". 13th zodiacal sign, Auriga, the Charioteer. That there were originally
13 signs in the zodiac goes back, among other possible source, to Osiris' body
being dismembered into 13 parts. Or rather, the other way, around: this myth,
amongst others, should perhaps be seen as celestial in origin. References should
be made to James Vogh's "Arachne Rising", wherein he points out that Auriga (or
Arachne), lying as it does midway between Taurus and Gemini, is the logical
place for the 13th sign and appears to have been so designated by the Druids.
There are others who cite Ophiuchus, the Serpent Holder, as the more logical
13th month. Ophiuchus (between Scorpio and Sagittarius) is even cited by some as
the Age we are now inhabiting, rather than Pisces or Aquarius, and that it began
in the early 1940's. (See AQUARIUS).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARCHANGELS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARCHON
On the mundane plane, a temporal ruler. Each magician has his own dimension over
which he is its Archon. In Gnosticism, the Archons were planetary rulers - the
planets representing as they did spiritual worlds which the soul, as in Ancient
Egypt, passed after death. In order to pass from one sphere to the next, the
soul has to bew able to recite the proper password, or give the "name" (i.e.,
the understanding) of the corresponding Archon. This is the "sacred knowledge"
that Gnosis comprised. Archons, however, are rulers of the earth and universe,
which are the evil, inferior realms composed of souls imprisoned in matter -
that's why special or privileged knowledge is necessary to get past them.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARIES
The Ram, first sign of the zodiac in the mundane chart, and sign of all
beginnings. The Great Beginner, sign of spring, freedom, leadership and emblem
of the initiator in all things. The ram's horn or shofar is still the rallying
call of Judaism, which began at the beginning of the Arietian Age over 4000
years ago. The Ram is the unifying Emperor because he is the head of the world,
the mansion of the exaltation of the Sun. The most powerful number is One, the
Ace that tops the multitudes.
Aries, being the individual, represents the uniqueness of all monads and all
mortals: what men have in common is their difference. Famous Arietians:
Charlemagne, Bismarck, Jefferson, Cesar Chavez, Raphael, Swinburne, Wilhelm
Reich, Dane Rudhyar, Houdini, Hans Christian Andersen, Rachmaninoff, Descartes,
Joseph Campbell.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARITHMOSOPHY
Numerology, but specifically Bertiaux's breaking down of words into numbers for
one of his alternate universes.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARMAGEDDON
23
The Plain of Meggido, a site of traditional battles in ancient Canaan. According
to the Bible, this is where the last mighty battle in the war between the armies
of Light and Darkness will culminate and climax in the Day of Judgment. It
should be understood that this is not an ordinary war between nations, but a
spiritual conflict occuring within the human collective unconscious. Meggido is
the symbol of the world and it is in the world that the Great War is now being
waged. Its effects are felt when Megiddo is recognized as a place of mourning
where great kings of Judah were slain and it seems therefore that error has
taken the place of ideals.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ARMANISM
Ancient Teutonic pagan priesthood exterminated by the Xtians. One of the streams
that was diverted by the Nazis to feed directly into their metaphysics.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AS IF
In Eckankar, chelas are taught that the senses contain all manifestation.
Imagination, in the field of Maya, if exercised properly will create an effect
by the chela "as if" it has already happened. We have only to recognize that we
have already reached "God-consciousness".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ASPECT
One of the forms or faces of a god (Brahma/Vishnu/Shiva or "Father Son and Holy
Ghost). A human being's aspect can be considered one of his traditional roles,
as an actor has certain well-chosen "character" parts.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ASTRAL LIGHT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ASTRAL PLANE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ASTROSOME
The astral, "healing" body that can leave the body when not busy and which
destroys the body after death. (Also, a bad example is the vampire).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ASTROSOPHY
Astrology has frequently been criticized for offering proofs of its validity on
single examples, as though it were some sort of faulty science. Astrology,
however, does not rest upon cause and effect, but is based on the hermetic
principle of Correspondence, exemplified by synchronicities and other
simultaneous parallelisms. Mind is the link between the body and the Cosmos.
Astrology is the recognition of this connection. When the psyche descends to the
sensory world, its celestial planets are drawn inward, i.e. earthed, and they
become cramped, distorted, negative reflections - faint echoes of what they
were. So the planets become their own inversions. Saturn, for instance, is
originally divine intelligence, but in man it now settles for putting ordinary
"reason" on the throne of Transcendence. Since Saturn is the heaviest of the
planets, its gravity pulls down all the others which in turn become inversions
of themselves also. Hence confusion grows on what it feeds and since astrology
fights a failing battle in its effort to keep the psyche's Cosmic connection, it
is subject to endless criticism.
With the dawn of the "Age of Reason", we imagined that we had found the solution
to our problems by rejecting the celestial link altogether and by exalting
"Rationalism". This was the opposite direction from the one we should have
taken. Now, feeling the lack of the "Spiritual" we seek it where we can - and,
to our regret, now find outside ourselves only "irrationalism". With that we can
no proceed to exclude the natural world as well as the transcendental,
pathetically turning to the computer, robot and artificial intelligence as our
highest goals.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ASURAS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATHAME
26
Consecrated, black-handled knife, used for drawing circles to invoke spiritual
entities. Implements for performing M/magic(k)al acts must themselves be
M/magic(k)al. Ordinary tools do but ordinary work.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATHEISM
Can be divided roughly into two phases - Sartrean Atheism and Post-Sartrean
Atheism. For Sartre, raised in the Catholicism of the 19th and early 20th
Century, God was the meaning of life and the world. Once God was proved not to
exist (or murdered as Nietzsche put it), meaning also ceased to exist. The
universe for Sartre was hence absurd and nauseating. We now recognize that
meaning and purpose can be present even if Creation is self-created - either as
the original cause of self-creation or as its ultimate (not-yet-completed)
result.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATHTAR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATLANTIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATTENTIONALITY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATTRIBUTE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATU
27
The tarot trumps are called atus, which is Egyptain aat "mansion", aatu
"mansions." Erroneously, atu is thought to derive from French à tous, since
trumps are above all other suits.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ATUM
(Sometimes identified with the Hebrew "Adam"). Egyptian God often depicted as
masturbating, since he is self-created and as he is also credited with pulling
the whole of creation out of himself (precursor of Adam's rib?). He also
represents the return of the Cosmos to its origins, as the serpent devouring its
own tail. By masturbating in Heliopolis, his brother and sister, Shu and Tefnut,
were produced by ejaculation. Sometimes he was described as "spitting forth"
life from his mouth, as though he himself were one entire penis.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AUGOEIDES
From Greek meaning "light vision" or "bright shape", refers to the luminous
nature of the higher self. The Causal or Egoic Body. First used by Iamblichus.
In Crowley's case this was the mysterious Aiwass. In Bulwer Lytton's Zanoni it
is rendered as the "Higher Ego". The knowledge of the Augoeides is one of the
major goals of the magician. (See HOLY GUARDIAN ANGEL).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AUM
This is the holy word (OM) in its tripartite form, representing the Hindu
Trinity. A = Vishnu (the self). U = Brahma (Not-Self). M = Shiva (location).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AUTISM
A mental state in which one fails to discern even the slightest meaning or
purpose in other people, or indeed in anything outside the self. If there were
such a thing as the opposite of a "magical" mind, such would be the autistic
personality.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AUTOPOETIC LAPIS
Terence McKenna's psilocybic revelation from "Magical Blend," April, 1989: "The
'autopoetic lapis' is the ingression of novelty to concrescence, a 'tightening
gyre'. Everything flows together and coalesces in the alchemical stone at the
end of time ... when the laws of physics are obviated, the universe disappears
and what is left is the tightly bound plenum, the monad, able to express itself,
rather than only able to cast a shadow into physis as its reflection. In 2012
our species enters hyperspace, but it will appear to be the collapse of the
state vector, the end of physical laws and the release of the mind itself.
"All these other images - the starship, the space colony, the lapis - these are
precursory images. They follow naturally from the idea that history is the shock
wave of eschatology. As one closes distance with the eschatological object, the
reflections it is throwing off resemble more and more the thing itself. In the
final moment the Unspeakable stands revealed. There are no more reflections of
the Mystery. The Mystery in all its nakedness is seen, and nothing else exists.
But what it is, decency can safely scarcely hint at; nevertheless, it is the
crowning joy of futurism to seek anticipation of it."
28
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AUTOPROSSING
Using a word-processor for automatic writing. The first (known) channeled entity
(1988) was Thurmon of Xoros-Eridanus 14.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AVIDYA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AVOIDANCE FIXATION
Habits and addictions are escape mechanisms for coping with deprivation,
restriction, monotony and apprehension. We should understand, however, that
addiction is the way of Nature. The "laws" of Physics are such embedded
addictions that they can scarcely be broken at all. Plants live lives of total
fixation. Animals are governed by strict instincts and gravitate naturally to
routine. Man is so addictive that almost anything can become an obsession or a
compulsion.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AWAR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AZAZEL
("Strength of God") The Angel who refused to worship Adam, renamed "Iblis", the
Arab demon. Aaron paid equal tribute to Azazel and Jehovah.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AZOTH
The jewel of Paracelsus. Alchemists' mercury. According to some, from Arabic Az-
zaug "the quicksilver". According to others, the word comprises totality from A
to Z, from Alpha to Omega, from Aleph to Tau. Salt, the passive principle, is
joined to Sulphur, the active principle, by the catalyst, Mercury. Azoth is
thought to be the creative principle itself. It is usually symbolized by a cross
or circle with the letters TARO at the four termini, so that the final T is the
same as the initial T and thus can be seen to constitute a wheel:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
AZTEC ASTROLOGY
Based on the 52-year revolution of the Pleiades, the calendar is divided into
four 13-year quarters. A religious year consisted of three concentric cycles:
the Tonalpuohualli of 260 days, the solar year of 365 days and the Venus cycle
29
of 584 days. The earth has survived four "Suns" or eons, called Nahul, which
destructions were characterized by earth, air, fire and water. (Thus the most
recent End of the World coincided with the biblical flood).
The fifth sun, Nahul Ollin or "movement", which we now inhabit, is the aeon of
the calendar in question. It was divinely created in 13 Acatl at Teotihuacan and
will end in 2011, with the beginning of the sixth Sun. Precisely how the current
aeon will collapse is anyone's guess.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
B
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BA
The Atman, the Egyptian soul, depicted as a bird with a human head, though
apparently not the very similar bennu-bird. After death, it splits apart into
the akh, which is a temporary spirit in the form of a bird that flies to the
Afterworld where it turns back into the ka, or double. The ba remains behind
with the mummy. The ba is incarnation, the ka is the vitalizing power and the
akh (symbolized by the ibis) is light. On the spirit level they correspond to
the uas, ankh and djed.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Lord of the Good Name. This phrase is involved in the Hebrew banishing and
exorcism of the demons of black magic.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BABALON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BAILEY, ALICE
Authoress of A Treatise on Cosmic Fire (and numerous other works). Died in 1949
at age 69. She was a Theosophist who also, it is claimed, maintained a
fundamentalist Xtian belief (quite unlike HPB) and the conviction that she (like
HPB) was in contact with the Secret Chiefs of the Inner Plane, especially Koot
Hoomi. It is difficult, however, to assign much importance to any possible
Galilean influences on her serious work. Her writings are largely arcane and
abstract, containing insights into Hindu, Tibetan and Buddhist metaphysics of a
profundity, and frequently of an opacity, rarely encountered elsewhere.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BALCHIPUSHTI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
30
BALKH
All roads lead to Balkh (mysterious Near Eastern city), said by Gurdjieff,
referring to the Sufic origin of all systems.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BAPHOMET
Idol (chiefly its head) said to have been worshipped by the Templars. It is also
the God of the Sabbath of Sorcerers. Its obvious association with Mohamet is
possibly the result of unexamined Islam. Its also a symbol of Gnosticism. The
Knights Templars (1118-1300) were involved with Gnosticism, Cathars,
Albigensians, Manichaeans, and many other groups.
Since the Tarot appears in the 14th Century and since it bears some indications
of Muslim origin (primarily the word, Al-Tariqa, or the way) and the Naipes of
Spain (Arabic nabi, prophet), then perhaps Baphomet was supposed to be Mohammed.
Crowley's Devil Baphomet certainly is alchemical, phallic and capric enough
(with a 3rd eye).
Lévi: "To know how to extract from all matter the pure salt concealed therein is
to possess the secret of the Stone that the Qabalists gave to their Mercury, the
personification of Hermanubis and to Sulfur, the Templars' Baphomet." The name
can also be given backwards: TEM OPH AB, Templum Omnium Hominum Pacis Abbas.
Satan, in an important sense, has no existence. He's perennially invented by a
perverse will again and again, strictly for evil purposes. All inferior
magicians worship the devil. The Devil, says Crowley, is created by the Black
Brothers to imply a unity in their ignorant muddle of dispersions. A devil who
had unity would be a God.
Baphomet has his own tetramorph: Dog, Bull, Ass and Goat, representing
perversions of the cardinal signs.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BARAKA BASHAD
(Sufi.) Blessed Be.. A baraka is a blessing or power used by the Sufis. Baraka
is another name for the X-Factor, conceived as a magickal fluid that pours forth
from the saints.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BARATCHIAL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BAT
(See CHIROPS.) The bat is also the glyph of the pathway of the Hanged Man, and
the totem of the Voodoo worshipers. In popular thinking it is the soul of the
unenlightened, because it dwells in darkness and feeds indiscriminately on all
life. In China, however, where many things are reversed, the word fu means
either a bat or a blessing.
31
Since the bat sleeps upside-down he affords an important avenue to reversion of
consciousness. (See VAMPIRE.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BEELZEBUB
Literally, "Lord of the Flies", that is, the Canaanite demon ruling over
corruption, filth and death. Originally he was a God worshipped in temples free
of flies. The conversion of the emblem of his purity into the tag of his
destruction is typical of the progression of every God rejected by established
religion. Incidentally, Beelzebud or Beelzebuth is, Legge suggests, a
Valentinian play on Jabezebuth (but which came first? Chicken Beelzebub or egg
Beelzebuth? - "Lord of Flies" or "Lord of Gifts"?) Jab- means "desire." Things
are never quite what they appear to be, in the Gnostic world at least. And at
this point in history demons and gods were in such a state of flux,
linguistically and pneumatically, that almost any theurgic word or name could
mutate in many different directions.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BEHDET
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BELIEF
What KG calls a "primal obsession" and in Aleister Crowley and the Hidden God,
he says, "Every magician must discover the word that conceals his dominant
obsession, must vibrate it until its energizing elemental is awakened." Myths
are never intended to be believed. They are opportunities to restructure our
values and lead us to new insights. Goblins need not be real in order to be
real. No magician ever believes anything. That includes the current consensus.
Gurdjieff went so far as to say, "Believe nothing, not even yourself." Feelings,
unless one has trained intuitional talents, can never be trusted to reflect
reality. The alternative to believing is simply experiencing or knowing.
It is not belief that acts as a placebo, it is the absence of doubt. This is the
real meaning of Gnosticism which had no truck with belief, but was concerned
solely with knowing (from Gk. gnostikos, good at knowing). You know something by
direct experience of the body and mind, not through second-hand evidence or
teaching or belief. Healing has nothing to do with struggling against disbelief,
it is a relaxing into the experience itself and accepting, without giving way to
despair, that whatever happens is all right. When patients say they believe,
they really mean they have learned how to relax on the tightrope without falling
off. If they had to keep forcing themselves to believe, theyd quickly wither and
fall.
Meanwhile, 19th Century rationalism is paling to insignificance. Our Xtian
children, reared in frustration and boredom, soon desert their native religions
and run away to sex and drugs. Then, after burning themselves out, they return
in the mantle of shame that we force them to wear, offering themselves to be
brainwashed anew in our guilt-ridden, mind-murdering belief factories.
There is a deplorable tendency for our society to mention religion and magic in
the same breath, as though they were synonyms. Of course, nothing could be
further from the truth. Admittedly, it is an idiosyncrasy of some magi to
bristle at religion, chiefly because it is authoritarian, rigid, ignorant and
oppressive, and also because it belittles and persecutes creativity. However, a
sharp line between magic and religion must be strongly drawn. We are told that
magic goes beyond belief. It does nothing of the kind - it shuns belief like the
pox! If religion is 100% belief, magic is based in equal parts upon knowledge,
originality, perseverance and boldness. Where confusion arises in the popular
32
mind is over sorcery, which uses the trappings of magic and religion
indiscriminately, is based on belief and subordination, but at the same time
brazenly seeks selfish material gain and ego enhancement. Sorcery is really a
kind of credulous business transaction, whose motto might well be the ends
glorify the means.
Although Judaism and Buddhism are special cases, in Xtianity and Islam, the
purpose of religion is individual salvation in the Hereafter. These belief-based
religions assure salvation through fixing one's faith on a God or a Paraclete
which is other than the self and which, in fact, erases the self altogether. The
purpose of magic, on the other hand, is frankly the transmogrification in whole
or in part, with or without the invocation of Gods of the hell that our world
really is. Since the magician always dwells at the chaotic, creative edge of the
present, this transmogrification concerns itself with means as much as ends. He
rings in the changes as he goes along, extemporaneously. Nor does the magician
cringe and subordinate himself, but acts on equal footing with the pantheistic
and holonomic principle that each part is equal to, if not greater than, the
whole. Since, moreover, any part, in a sense, is equal to any other part, the
magician himself is neither more nor less valuable than anyone or anything else.
The individual self is merely unique in the meaning and interpretation of its
contribution. Therefore, the magician is always willing to sacrifice himself in
any manner that may prove necessary to his work.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BELL'S THEOREM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BELPHAGOR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BERESHITH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BESQUL
A Lovecraftian gosub of the qliphotic Quliefi path, falling away so rapidly into
the infinity of the Abyss that it even has its own dark qabalahs. In the normal
Tarot, Quliefi is replaced by the Moon.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BILAL
33
First convert to Islam and first muezzin, a negro slave.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BIBRANCHING
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BINAH
The third qabalistic power chakra of the Tree of Life. The old woman. Female
principle of darkness. Also symbolized by Isis. It is part of the upper triad of
the Qabalah (see SEPHIROTH), the only one which lies within human understanding,
hence it is the Mother and The Creation. This is the abode of the High-
Priestess, Isis.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BIODES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BIONS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BLACK HOLE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BLACK KNIGHT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BLACK MAGIC
Sorcery or Goetia. Eliphas Lévi said it was but the shadow of white magic and
that, in greater wisdom, we can see that the light and the dark are the same
34
thing. On the simplest level, White Magic is the work of the conscious mind,
with Black Magic the work of the unconscious. Or, as Jung put it, white magic
serves the self and black magic the ego. For Alice Bailey, on more complicated
levels, white magic deals with the soul, the positive electrical energies,
transmutation through radiation and the self-induced development of the Central
Self. Black magic deals with the outer form, negative electrical energy,
reduction of the human sphere.
But in popular belief black magic frankly isnt just simply intended to harm
others more than that, its the worship and glorification of the negative. Said
Crowley in a 1933 newspaper article quoted by Grant (The Magical Revival): "To
practice black magic you have to violate every principle of science, decency and
intelligence. You must be obsessed with an insane idea of the importance of the
petty object or your wretched and selfish desires ... I despise the thing to
such an extent that I can hardly believe in the existence of people so debased
and idiotic as to practise it."
Historians insist that the idea of black magic derives originally from a word in
the Arabian version of magic, from a confusion of fehm, black, with fehm,
understanding or wisdom. In general, the idea of black or forbidden magic simply
arose as a designation for the unofficial or unorthodox. In our predominantly
masculine culture, black magic is that which relates to the feminine principle.
HPB designates the symbols of black magic to be the Moon and the inverted
pentagram as opposed to white magics sun symbol and point-uppermost star. Black
magic, she tells us, is concerned with form and matter, whereas white magic
seeks the life and spirit within the form. Black magic uses the astral light to
deceive, to seduce and to serve the purposes of involution, whereas white magic
uses the same light to instruct others and to aid evolution. For HPB, black
magic, furthermore, sought to degrade sex, whereas white magic sought to
transmute it to higher creative thought.
Remember that magic is a completely different path from religion or science. Its
sometimes called the Middle Pillar. It matters little where you choose to begin.
The vodounist, for instance, who thinks he'll just drop in for a lesson in where
to stick the pins into the doll will soon discover that sorcery is clumsy and
ineffective according to its distance from higher principles of responsibility
and inter-relationship with all consciousness, both higher and lower. The person
who is merely curious will soon discover that he has a genuine thirst for
understanding and his curiosity will blossom into a consuming passion for
enlightenment. Consider the life of Tibetan yogi Milarepa, who started out as an
evil black magician only to become, eventually, a great saint!
Since the proper goal of magic is to deliver the world from its infernal
condition, there is a tendency to view any magic but one's own as black or evil.
However, strictly speaking, there is no such thing as black magic. All paths are
sacred. The initiate does not distinguish between self and other. Rather than
calling white the magic of charity and black the magic of self, we would do
better to think of all magic as that which seeks wisdom and designate as leading
to evil, sorcery, only that which acts in ignorance. By that definition, most
contemporary religion is black magic.
The dark path, Vama Marg or left-hand path, is merely one side of the caduceus,
in contrast to the other, and as light is brought into darkness, it ceases to be
dark. The phrase, Lux in tenebris, can refer to the light being brought to the
darkness, or to the darkness itself acting as light. Like the scientist, the
true magician does not shrink from exploring all avenues of the manifest and the
unmanifest. Some magicians say that we are actually unable to choose anything
but white magic (or enlightenment), since in order for any magical operation to
work, one has to refine one's understanding and purify one's vision. In
practice, however, the followers of Satanism supposedly align themselves to the
development of the individual ego for the sake of personal power. In order to
strengthen the ego, detachment is learned through controversial rites. One of
the preoccupations of magic is to enlist gods, spirits, elementals, etc. to do
one's bidding and to release their power to the practitioner. But the black
magician seeks unlimited power, not to borrow, but to appropriate for himself
not in order to better the world or himself, but to satisfy his personal greed
and to establish his ambitious tyranny. Moreover, real magicians know better
35
than to wallow in close-minded ignorance and self-perpetuating superstition.
They certainly arent going to go to all the trouble of throwing out Jesus just
so that he can sneak in through the back door wearing the cloak of Satanism.
Serious magicians consider true Satanism (mere Devil Worship, that is) to be
shallow and ultimately self-defeating. Power and freedom accrue in direct
proportion to the shedding of the ego, not to its inflation. Initiates see
Satanism as a pathetic rebellion that merely exalts the other side of the coin
of Xtianity. In any case, Satanism is more in the nature of a religion than a
magical system, since it is based upon belief and worship. Seeing that Xtianity
tars all variance from itself with the same brush, it has become necessary to
discourage the childish triflers by labeling dark that which is most holy.
Finally, for the last word on the subject, here is a graffito copied from a San
Francisco sidewalk, circa 1987: White witchcraft which fools condemn. Turns to
black and crushes them.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BLACK SUN
One the other side of Daäth, the reverse of beauty, the hideous God, Baphomet,
the Black Sun (or Black Snake) is the opposite equivalent of Tiphareth, Osiris
or Apollo. The Black Sun and The Black Moon may also stand for the names of
secret societies known to very few.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BODDHISATTVA
A saint who has forgone Nirvana and reincarnates in order to help mankind.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BÖN or BÖNPA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BONEWITZ, PHILIP
First holder of a B.A. degree in Magic from U.C. Berkeley, 1970. His goal is to
modernize and scientize M/magic(k) of all kinds.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BOOK OF THOTH
Crowleys term for the Tarot. He didn't necessarily, however, assume an Egyptian
origin for the Tarot, as some believe. Thoth is interchangeable with Hermes and
Tarot is part of the Hermetic Tradition.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
36
BRUNO, GIORDANO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BUDDHISM
Since we waste our youth suffering from boundless ignorance and unfulfilled
desire and since age is mostly a time of physical hardship and blunted hopes, it
seems clear that life, for all its promises, is more a burden than a joy. Since,
however, to die is to be instantly reborn into life, death is apparently an even
more absolute cheat. Considering also that all things have arisen in the Mind,
in the midst of the Void, and since we are ourselves our own creators and gods
(in a multiplicity of aspects and a simultaneous gallimaufry of forms), there is
no escaping from the inevitability of either the existing or the potential
cosmos. Indeed, it is this very weariness which Reality seeks to assuage by
confusing itself as to its own identity.
The Buddha, sensing the horror and outrage of life on earth, wants to lead us to
the perfection of the Absolute.
He teaches that birth and death (the wheel of Samsara), together with the Karmic
burden, can be dropped in enlightenment and we can enter into Nirvana directly.
In an even deeper understanding we are shown that Samsara and Nirvana are
already one so there is not even any need for enlightenment! (But of course you
have to be enlightened before you can understand that you are already
enlightened!)
To the average westerner this seems fairly tame stuff and much too intellectual
for his taste. He doesnt want contemplation, he wants action. But he should
understand that Buddhism is a discipline of conscious mind and is meant to
accompany action, not to take its place. It is serenity of the mind which
enables creative work to be done and acceptance of life to take place. The other
thing the westerner sometimes fails to recognize is that death and reincarnation
are as much a part of his belief system as they are that of a Hindu philosopher.
What, after all, is Heaven but the prospect of rebirth on a higher plane? What
is Hell but the karma of past lives?
------------------------------------------------------------------------
BUFOTENIN
A hallucinogenic derived from the active ingredient in the fluid taken from toad
warts.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
C
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CACABUS
37
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CADUCEUS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CANCER
The fourth sign of the Zodiac (June 22-July 23). The Crab is the final
resolution of material manifestation, symbolized by the depth of the sea or the
lake between the mountains. It is the sign of the soul's incarnation and the
beginning of material life.
All the other creatures of the Zodiac move in a forward direction, but the Crab
is able to move backwards and sideways as well. This indicates that Cancer is
the sign of the time-traveler. (The Chariot is a time machine). Colin Wilson (a
Cancerian himself) believes that the Crab symbolizes the fact that when we have
our skeletons on the outside we are undeveloped followers of the will of others
and must learn to grow our own skeletons on the inside so that we can become
leaders. Thus Cancer is the sign of both slaves and rebels.
For the Egyptians, Cancer, coinciding with the rising of Sirius, was the "Theme
of the World", the universal horoscope (what today we call the "mundane chart")
in which, according to Ptolemy's Tetrabiblos, the planets, etc. were in the
position they occupied at the very beginning, long before the Age of Aries. It
is therefore, associated with Sirius, the Dog Star, or beginning of the Egyptian
year.
Famous Cancerians: Alexander the Great, John the Baptist, Count von Zeppelin,
Mary Baker Eddy, George Orwell, Helen Keller, P.T. Barnum, Jean Cocteau,
Rousseau, Pirandello, Charles Laughton, James Cagney, Buckminster Fuller, Ingmar
Bergman, Jerry Rubin, Hermann Hesse, Kafka, Hawthorne, Proust, Thoreau,
Rembrandt, Barbara Stanwyck, Ginger Rogers, George McGovern, Marshall McLuhan,
Rube Goldberg and Nicola Tesla.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CAP OF MAINTENANCE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CAPRICORN
The tenth sign of the Zodiac (Dec. 22 - Jan. 20). As symbolized by the mountain-
top, the Fish-Goat is the culmination of all the signs (as its opposite, Cancer,
is the origin and Nadir of all the signs). At this point materialization is
38
complete and it is time to enter the spirit. It is the sign of kings and
messiahs who sacrifice themselves for the common people.
Famous Capricornians: Tycho Brahe, Carlos Castaneda, Alan Watts, Humphrey
Bogart, Marlene Dietrich, Gurdjieff, Mao-Tse-Tung, Matisse, Nostradamus,
Paracelsus, Pasteur, Woodrow Wilson, Stalin, Loyala, Joan Baez, Nixon, Albert
Schweitzer, Joan of Arc, Martin Luther King, Benjamin Franklin, Poe.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CARPOCRATES
A 2nd Century Gnostic, who advocated promiscuity and thereby earned the hatred
of orthodox Xtianity, which in turn delighted in distorting his philosophy. What
Carpocrates intended to show was that the flesh is of so little importance
compared to the soul, that it can be used and abused for a higher purpose. Since
the body is a prison, it is necessary to transcend the flesh through
experiencing it and thereby free oneself of all desire. Any human experience
missed will simply cause reincarnation in another body. If we do not break all
the divine laws, we cannot free ourselves to return to the Unbegotten.
Carpocrates is credited with having said, "Nothing is evil by nature" and his
ideas can be traced to Plato and Pythagoras. Another thing that made
Carpocratians unpopular with the orthodox Xtians was their idea of communal
property, an early form of Communism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CASSANDRA
This daughter of Hecuba who had inherited her mother's gift of prophecy rejected
Apollo who, in revenge, caused her predictions to be disbelieved by everyone.
Just as no one rejects Apollo who expects to attain popular success, so no one
who cruelly paints the truth always in harshest colors or without some
artfulness will be heeded.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CASTANEDA, CARLOS
Author of many books on Mexican brujería, centering on the Yaquí sorceror, Don
Juan Matus, a healthy championer of mescalito and peyote.
Don Juan considered himself a "warrior", patiently awaiting the opportunity to
use his will. He taught that we must learn how to see correctly. His four
overcomings for the warrior are: Fear; Power; Calrity; Old Age. We still ignore
the lesson of the success of Xtianity, which failed to historify Jesus, yet
prevailed all the same. Similarly, critics attempt to prove that Don Juan never
existed, hoping thereby to discredit the teachings. Perhaps it's time we
admitted that fiction can take many forms, including philosophy and metaphysical
initiation.
Don Juan is much like Jesus Christ: an entity of tremendous mythic power who is
only diminished by attempts to over-authenticate or historicize him.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CATECHUMEN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CATHARI
39
In 12th Century France, the Cathars were also known as the Albigensians,
elsewhere sometimes equated only slightly less accurately with chiliastic
Manichæanism (the belief in a dualistic universe ruled by Good and Evil) and
early Gnosticism. They held that the world was created by a blind demiurge and
is under the dominion of Evil. The Albigenses (from the town of Albi), believed
that Lucifer was God's first son and Christ his second son, whose role was to
bring spiritual order to Lucifer's evil domain. Most historians persist in
describing the Cathari as sexual "puritans" but it was actually reproduction
that they condemned. Their priests did not eat eggs or milk because they are the
by-products of reproduction.
It is most curious that contemporary mention of this sect almost always ignores
this most important aspect, viz. their insistence that human reproduction or
procreation is the only unforgivable sin. Since this world is hell, to foist
existence on innocent beings is a crime. Hence, they were the first
practitioners of compulsory birth-control.
Some of the Cathari were quite ascetic frequently fasting, always chaste and
were called Parfaits or "Perfects", hence the modern French dessert. Others
believed that sodomy was a logical way of avoiding procreation. In Bulgaria,
where Cathari were equated with the Bogomils, sodomy was routinely practiced as
an alternative to reproduction hence the origin of the word "bugger" from
Bulgar.
The Cathari (and other Gnostics) understood what our postmodern world has
forgotten. A society that puts all of its meaning, purpose, faith and future
into its children, is a society that has lost touch not only with the present
and with its sense of responsibility it has lost touch with life itself. Those
least qualified to teach are those who are most fertile. Those who grind out
children like links of sausage cease to take the slightest interest in the very
things that their children value the most and those things that most ought to
concern society, what most needs to be preserved. People who have had children
no longer demand of themselves the time, energy, courage or inclination to
attempt the rigorous, perilous and unpredictable experimentation essential to
authentic personal, social and racial growth.
As the Catholic Church was considered by the Cathari to be strictly "the work of
the Devil" and the Cross an affront to God, the Cathari were universally
despised. The Church opposed this heresy vigorously through pogroms and
massacres, so that by 1330 there were no more of them left to persecute.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CATHEXIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CAVE SEDEM
Lat. "Beware of the chair!" An ancient reminder to keep fit, because medieval
scholars tended to forget to exercise. Today, in light of the fact that everyone
and his backup has to make a spectacle of jogging and yet cannot discuss any
subject but the latest football scores, I would suggest to them that it is not
the lard on their asses that should concern them, but the lard in their heads!
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CERBERUS
Twin of Orthrus, who is symbol of Set. The tri-cephalic dog with the dragon's-
tail guarding the gate of Hades, who permits entry but prevents exit, is
probably derived from pre-Hellenic Ker + bero (pherontes), meaning simply "head-
bearing", for originally he had a hundred heads and not merely three. His three
40
heads stand in parallel to and midway between the three rivers leading to Hades
(Phlegeston, Styx and Lethe, which divide the dead from the living) and the
three judges within Tartarus Rhadamanthus, Minos and Aeacus who judge men's
souls. He is the Greek equivalent of the jackal-headed Egyptian God Anubis (or
the wolf-headed deity of Abydos, Wepwawet, "Opener of the Ways"). Proof of this
can be seen in the fact that whereas Cerberus is the offspring of Typhaon (the
terrible stormcloud or cyclone, and the last of the titans) and the serpent-
woman, Echidna, Anubis is the son of Osiris and Nephthys (sister of Isis), who
assisted in the putting back together of the parts of Osiris and his
resurrection. As Gods descend from one people to another, they usually
degenerate into monsters. We see this readily in the transformation of pagan
deities into Xtian demons. Anubis is god of the three processes of death,
resurrection and reintegration, who leads the soul to the underworld under his
protection, but Cerberus is merely a monster who guards the pathway. Mention
should also be made of the three ultraexistential "beyond" Gods: Ain Soph, Tao
and Abraxas.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CETOGENIC
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHALDEAN
A synonym for "astrologer", since it was the Chaldaeans who were most advanced
in this art. The following alphabet is one of 20 or 30 different Chaldean
alphabets in Edmund Fry's Pantographia (1799); it is called "celestial" because
it was believed to have been designed by ancient astrologers "from the figures
of certain stars" (i.e. constellations):
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHANNELING
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHAOS
The first step away from the Unknown Absolute. HPB says it is "the impenetrable
veil between the incognizable and the Logos." Apart from its ordinary meaning,
Grant calls it "the ultimate substance of anti-matter." Its number is 156 (same
as Babalon). Mostly what we call "order" is but an arbitrary arrangement of
chaotic elements, as when we give an arbitrary frame of stars the name of a
constellation.
Chaos is an endless fount of original realities in which anything is possible at
random. Who hath in himself no chaos hath no power to create a star! However,
41
since all things are but a repetition of the one, all things have the same
creative handle on them. That is, our worlds are unpredictable as to form, but
not to content - or vice-versa, depending on the morphogenetic rules. Science
says of chaos, "Highs are followed by lows. Lows are followed by
unpredictability." (Which, or course, is to say nothing).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHAOS MAGICK
Basically, it is that aspect of magic that deals with entering the "Abyss" or,
on the common level of understanding, facing the unknown Chaos being simply "The
Unknown" as apparently devoid of meaning. Chaos Magic was largely the invention
of artist Austin Osman Spare in his Zos Kia Cultus. Later, a form of Chaos
Magick was developed by a few others in the 1980's as a form of the magic of
solipsism. It was best expounded in the 1980s by Pete Carroll in his Liber Null
& Psychonaut and comprised the magic of the "Illuminates of Thanateros", and in
the 1990s is best exemplified by such groups as AutonomatriX and Z-Cluster, and
moreover by myriad individual (or rogue) practitioners such as Andrew Chumbley
and Stephen Mace.
The very mystery of being itself, said Carroll, is fundamentally connected to
how we deal with chaos. We react to chaos by earthing it to its opposite. Once
an action or result enters consciousness, then the chao-energy or "cause" has to
be carried all the way through to its end "effect" and hence is already
implicitly manifest in the thought, even as it rises. If the impulse, however,
is thwarted for any reason or scattered by ignorance, it falls back and
disappears into its opposite polarity, i.e. its concealment in chaos. Hence pre-
meditation is the bane of action and Crowley used to warn against the "lust for
results." (The action is the result!).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHAOSPHERE
It is hollow and contains all implements. One of the spikes can be withdrawn as
a weapon. Greg Bear (Aeon) says the chaosphere should be used as the signifier
for information that is not accessible to the unauthorized.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHAOS PREDICTION
Mathematical Chaos Prediction is the next step after Relativity and Quantum
Mechanics, now used partly (in ignorance) by computers, stockbrokers and oil-
dowsers. If the wrong people get hold of this key they will be able to control
all random factors in the world to their advantage. James P. Crutchfield say,
"Innate creativity may have an underlying chaotic process that selectively
amplifies small fluctuations." The amplification of small fluctuations
(characteristic of Chaos) and its bibranching can be examined by values of
growth factors at which bifurcations take place using "Feigenbaum's Number":
4,669.
Its whole number factors are 7, 23, 29, 161, 203 and 667. Note that 23 is
already claimed by R.A. Wilson as the "number of synchronicities" and 7 is the
mystical number par excellence, the "Holy Merkabah", the zodiacal sign of
Cancer. 29 = Hebrew Dacha, "Crushed". Further, from A.C.'s 777: 161 is the
Heavenly Man or Exalted Man, the "Congregation of the Eternal", 203 = Initials
of the Trinity: dead; feather: created; ambush : foreign; esoteric. 667 = "oil
for lighting". It is fortunate that 4 + 6 + 6 + 9 = 7. Thank Gods, it doesn't
add up to One! Then we would be in trouble!
42
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHAOTE
A person who recognizes the chaotic nature of our world. Most post-modern
chaotes know that consensual reality is doomed. Hakim Bey refers to chaotes as
"anarchs of the new paradigm."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHARACITH
The 18th Kala. A distortion of The Chariot. The magic is the power to cast
spells and the sickness associated with Characith is the danger of becoming a
vampire.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHARIOT, THE
The seventh Arcanum, lettered Cheth. The path connecting Binah and Geburah,
hence, according to Nevill Drury, the warrior-like aspect of the Emperor, who,
in contrast, is thought of more as a father-God. Here his role would seem to be
that of the Destroyer. Since most authorities assign Cancer to this Enigma
rather than Aries (which would be more fitting for The Emperor), such a role
seems questionable. Others see the Charioteer as simply the passenger of the
Merkabah. The chariot in its historical sense is the vehicle of triumph.
The sleeping (referring to the unconscious mind), black and white (positive &
negative) sphinxes represent the two-headed earth god, Aker. His two heads are
now sphinxes, now lions (the latter are reminiscent of the hieroglyphic "lions
of yesterday and tomorrow", facing opposite directions on the horizon).
Bicephalous Aker guards the eastern and western doorways to the Underworld. He
is the outer "limits" of earth (that is, limitations of matter).
For Crowley the Charioteer is the balancer and controller of opposing forces -
the opposite of opposing forces going awry, as in The Tower.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHELA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHERNOBOG
The old, Pre-Vladimir Slavic black demon (lit. "Black God") of the Varlagi
Russians, represented by a black dog. The similarity of the name of this demon
with Chernobyl, the nuclear power plant disaster of 1987, caused great distress
amongst the Russian people. Premier Gorbachev's forehead birthmark did not help
to allay slavic uneasiness, since it was read as the Apocalyptic "mark of the
beast."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHESED
(Or GEDULAH). The fourth qabalistic power zone of the Tree of Life. It is the
top of the pillar of "Mercy", the feminine counterpart of Geburah on the other
side. The rule of the manifest universe.
43
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHESS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHIROPS
Bat God - one of the mysterious "supreme" deities. (Cf. Satan's batwings and the
triliteral Arab root kh-f-sh, which depending on the vowels can mean "bat" or
"ruin", destruction"). In Mesoamerican religions, the bat stands for
enlightenment, since it awakens in the darkness. The Mayan god is Camazotz.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHOKMAH
The second power chakra of the qabalistic Trinity of the Tree of Life. The male
principle of light that goes out to uncover the "Hidden" Wisdom (Lux in
Tenebris). It is the zone of the Magician and Ra.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHORONZON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHOZZAR
The "Pig God" - Blavatsky says it is the God of the magicians of Atlantis, one
of Grant's Typhonian Teratomas or symbols of Set.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHRISTIAN, PAUL
44
French occultist (1811-1877), best known for his Histoire de la Magie (1870). He
regarded the "Book of Thoth" as containing, in its 22 arcana, "The Science of
Will, the principle of all wisdom and the source of all power."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHRISTOS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CHURCH OF SATAN
Founded by Anton Szandor LaVey, in San Francisco. His aeon (Anno Satanas)
commences on Walpurgisnacht, 1966. It is LaVey's contention that Satan is the
"spirit of progress and liberation" and that Xtianity, sanctimonious and
hypocritical, is opposed equally to the body and the intellect. The traditional
Black Mass, however, is outmoded, both in form and intention, and LaVey's
rituals are refreshingly different. The Church of Satan is not altruistic, is
frankly selfish, however, as LaVey says, "Evil is live backwards." The Satanic
Rituals, which is the companion to the Satanic Bible, contains virtually all
that any modern magician might require by way of invoking the dark gods.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
45
CLOACONIMBUS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
COBRA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
COMITY OF STARS
Refers to our planet's entry into post-historical galactic union after the
Ultimate Temporal Culmination of 2012.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CORYBANT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
COSH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
COSMIC SWITCHBOARD
1. The Grid of Omniscience or "Universal Mind" into which anyone may tap at
any time to obtain any datum or understanding of past, present or future. We are
all eventually hooked into omniscience, but in order to avoid being overwhelmed
by a chaos of information and meaning we set up a thick wall between ordinary
consciousness and omniscience. For the uninitiated, the light of omniscience is
so glaring that picking and choosing specific information is impossible.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CREED
------------------------------------------------------------------------
COURT CARDS
The royal cards of the Minor Arcana. Pages represent "establishing", Knights
stand for "initiation", Queens indicate "desires" and Kings are "controls".
Kings are sometimes referred to as Princes - that is, son rather than spouse of
the Queen. In addition, the Pages are earth, knights fire, queens water, Kings
air.
47
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CROSS
Ancient symbol, far predating Xtianity, and taking many forms, such as the
swastika and the Egyptian Ankh. It symbolizes, amongst many other things,
centrality and the union of male and female in divine conjunction. When circled
it symbolizes the earth and serves as an apotropaic. Most of the associations
attributed by the Galileans to the cross of their crucified god have been lifted
over the centuries from concurrent pagan sources.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CRYSTAL
Crystallized rock, quartz and gemstones are the highest forms of the mineral
kingdom. If you accept the fact that the earth is alive, as the entire manifest
universe is alive, then crystals, although not biodes, are centers of mineral
"intelligence", deriving from elemental proto-evolution. It is through crystal
that messages are broadcast via the air-waves and as earth is the amalgamating
force, crystallization precedes formation of the most primitive amino acids of
life. Thus, for the adept, crystals are avenues of cosmic information, quantum
change and negentropy.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CRYSTAL SKULL
A replica of an ancient human skull hewn out of a single rock crystal and found
by Anna Mitchell-Hedges in 1927 in the Mayan burial-ground, Labaantún, British
Honduras. Light reflected from the zygomatic arch and funneled along the optic
bridge causes the eye-sockets to shine brightly. The skull also emits
concentrated pinpoints of light and serves as a magnifying glass and scrying
ball. If suspended properly, the jaw will open and close, the eyes will flash
and it will easily nod yes or no. Tests reveal that it was not carved by metal
tools.
Small crystal skulls have throughout the past couple of centuries been unearthed
in Central America and a large one, similar to the Michell-Hedges skull, was
already in the British Museum. The M-H skull is of far superior quality,
however, and the British version is derived from the former.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CSICOP
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CTHULHU
(H.P. Lovecraft's cosmology). Great Evil One, dead or asleep and dreaming
beneath the sea in the sunken city of R'lyeh (Atlantis?), revived by Kenneth
Grant. As the powers of evil and darkness threaten to break through into this
world, this great "behemoth of the deep", awakens to lead them. His totem is the
Egyptian hippo goddess, Ta-Urt. His number is 52, the same as Semitic K-L-V or
48
"dog", referring, no doubt to Anubis. (Ta-Urt, however, be aware, is a secret
aspect of Isis).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CYBERPUNK
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CYCLOPS
(Pl. Cyclopes) The monocular giant sons of Gaea and Uranus who forged the
thunderbolts of Zeus: Arges the brightness, Brontes the thunder and Steropes the
lightning bolt itself. Poseidon also had one-eyed giant sons who were shepherds
and cannibals. One of them, Polyphemus, was blinded by Odysseus.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
CYNICS
(From Greek kynikos, "canine"). They were so called by Aristophanes in the 5th
Century because they were critical of materialists and "snarled at worldly
conceits". Interestingly enough, today's cynics tend to snarl not at
materialists but at idealists and visionaries. Increasingly, however, in the
postmodern world, cynicism directed towards the most firmly established segments
of society is coming to be seen as the highest mark of intelligence.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
D
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DAATH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DAEDALUS
Intricate. So-called after Daedalous, the artist who built the labyrinth of
Crete.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DAGDAGIEL
49
The guardian of the 14th tunnel of Set, the equivalent of the Empress, but here
degraded to a prostitute. Her magic is love philtres. Sicknesses are venereal
diseases and nymphomania.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DAGON
National god of the Phillistines; half fish/half man. Sometimes confused with
DOGON.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEATH
"Mental materiality". Life becomes more and more "mental" until death (even as
death becomes more and more physical until birth).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEATH
We should not dwell on the psychic envelopes that remain behind for those
wraiths, ghosts, apparitions and so on who must make their way the best they can
from the clues of their predecessors. Nor should we dally with the shells of the
qlipoth attending the sephiroth. The normal soul for whom, from below, the gates
appear as the gates of extinction and from above the gates of birth (or vice-
versa) has no time for leisurely observation. Nor does the yogin, for whom death
is merely a higher state of medi tation, require distraction. But we magicians
should stop for a moment at the pylons themselves, at the door of the Abyss, the
pause before lingam joins yoni, we should linger and observe the transitional
threshold.
Death and sex are not merely metaphorically identical, but physically so. Since
death (the second, total death, after the yesodic stage) results in instant
rebirth, it is obvious that birth and death are the entrance and withdrawal
motions of cosmic coit us on a slow-action timescale over successive
reincarnations.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEATH
The 13th Arcanum, lettered Nun, "The World of Truth". In esoteric philosophy,
Death is considered a gateway between modes of being. The Abyss, which all
magicians must cross unaided, is part of the path of Death, but not entirely. On
the Tree, the gateway to the darkside is the existent/non-existent portal of
Daäth, but the pathway of the Death Arcanum lies between Tiphareth (rebirth) and
Netzach (the individual). Notice the message, however, which is that the severed
heads and limbs ar e the "fruit" which has ripened and fallen from the Tree of
Life.
The Egyptians in their preoccupation with death were not being morbid. It is
difficult for contemporary man to see the importance of keeping a link to the
past. The Egyptian custom of embalming the dead served an existential as well as
a metaphysical purpose. It was an indication of their total commitment to the
past and their veneration of it.
50
For Crowley, the Atu is the "Death" of The Son, or His sacrifice, which in our
terms is His birth into this life.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
(Mors Justi.) Death in union with orgasm - since the orgasm is the affirmation
of the body and death is the rejection of the body, exact simultaneity is
difficult. One will generally precede the other.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEATH POSTURE
Austin Osman Spare's (auto-erotic) trance-state, in the Zos Kia Cultus, for
receiving the divine mudra of Death,
in which, says Grant, "the world of appearance ceases and its noumenal source is
revealed." Normally this can happen only at the point of physical death itself.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEATH STAR
(Sitra Achara as opposed to the Star of David.) Another term for "Universe B".
Dr. Philip S. Berg in The Power of Aleph Beth informs us that the force of
darkness constantly seeks to destroy Creation. Evil, for the Qabalist, is a
necessity without which the Universe would revert to its former condition "which
allowed no relief from the burden of 'Bread of Shame.'"
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DELPHI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DELUSIONAL SELF
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEOSIL
Clockwise, to the right, in the direction of the sun. This is the direction of
God, so deosil operations are positive and powerful. (See WIDDERSHINS.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEVACHAN
51
The Land where the Gods are reborn. Life's threshold, located between the
manvataras and between earth-lives. The higher realm above the astral (Skt. and
Tibetan deva, "light" + chan, "dwelling place"). Madame Blavatsky, in writing of
the realm of Devachan and the "wheatfields of Aanroo", is careful to point out
that Manas splits here, after death, between the higher and lower minds. Only
the higher mind remains. The lower, self-directed mind goes with the kama-rupa
to the "Abode of Shells", or the place of the Hebrew Qlipoth. Our "I" or "atman"
(with small a) rejoins that spiritual part of itself that is not incarnated, and
as "Atman (large A), it proceeds on through the aionic planets. According to
HPB, in Devachan we relive the totality of our past lives and re-experience our
"enduring selfhood". We relive the trans-personal "I" which our labors, filtered
through numberless incarnations, have made of the monadic essence which we
originally introduced into form. The visualized solar system is the
materialistic waste of an as-above-so-below operation. Hence all archetypes and
ideas ultimately surface to the material world. Here we blueprint all the
evolutions and involutions ("Not the One in many, but the oneness of the Many").
Rulers of these archetype-beings along with their human evolution make up the
Dhyan-Choans, gods or "contemplative lords".
There are rare beings who sacrifice their rest, Devachan or Nirvana to remain
earthbound in continual rebirth out of compassion for mankind. Animals, though
their astral bodies possess some temporary survival potential, have no ego-
manas, hence no Devachan. The animal monad can reincarnate only as a higher
species. By the same token, HPB states (Secret Doctrine), "Eastern philosophy
rejects the Western theological dogma of a newly-created soul for every baby
born, as being as unphilosophical as it is impossible in the economy of nature.
There must be a limited number of monads growing..."
Prior to Zoroaster and the Forth, or present, race, there was no Devachan, but
only rebirth, phoenix-like out of the ashes of the previous body. Xtianity
teaches the doctrine of the Old Third Race in which there is no higher Manas and
the human monad does not reincarnate until the Second Coming.
In orthodox Xtianity there is no rebirth - only literal resurrection on the Day
of Judgment with Christ's return (this opening of graves does not accompany the
return of Zoroaster, Kalki or the Maitreya Buddha). Also, unlike the
Theosophical version of the hereafter, there is no comparable split of spirit
from soul in orthodox Xtianity. Reincarnation is a Gnostic or Neoplatonic heresy
(Plato called this the "Realm of Ideas").
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DEVIL, THE
The 15th Arcanum, lettered Ayin. Connects Hod (Knowledge) and Tiphareth
(Beauty). It is clearly the pathway of error. The Devil is always illusion,
delusion and disillusion. the material world is illusion. Only spirit is real
and eternal. As we operate best from a position of confidence, the Devil is the
opposite position of doubt. Thus, for the true initiate, the temptations of the
Devil are not difficult to resist. In divination, the Devil is the actual source
of the problem, which may or may not be hidden from the conscious mind.
15 = 1+5 = 6, hence the Devil is another aspect of Enigma VI, "The Lovers".
Thus, if the Lovers represents a choice, the Devil represents the negative
result of that choice. As the epitome of "Earth" he bears the sign of Capricorn
and holds sway over all the four elements. Esoterically, according to Crowley,
the Devil represents mere physical (or "gross") procreation, strictly on the
physical level.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DHYAN-CHOANS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
52
DIFFERENCE
All things are one and separation is an illusion, but we are "separated" from
reality for the purpose of maximizing experience. The nature of the universe is
mind. the purpose of mind is to know itself, and knowing can be done only
through particularization.
We must, therefore, respect the differences between one another and honor the
wisdom of the individual. Sameness is not an imitation of divinity; it is dross.
That which in society is undifferentiated is ugly, evil and dangerous.
The only number of value is One, the number of divinity. No common thread
connects things unless it is their complementarity or synergy. Things partake of
divinity in proportion to their uniqueness. All power comes from the One, the
number of the Magician. All great things, all beautiful or important things
reach perfection once and once only. Thus there is no separate "Creator God"
apart from his "Creation". That would mean diversity is a lie. Still, diversity
is the nature of the One and there is only One. Separation is the illusion, not
differentiation. The One mirrors itself, differentiating according to our
attention. In Crowley's words, "Every man and every woman is a star."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DIOTIMA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DISCORDIAN SOCIETY
A right-wing secret organization said to control the world, descended from the
Bavarian Illuminati. Now loosely associated with the new Golden Dawn's Neo-
Thelemites, who (as far as we know) are not political and do not derive in an
unbroken line from the original.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DIVINATION
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DJWHAL KHUL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DJED
53
The spinal column of Osiris. It is important because originally there were arms
still attached, still grasping the flail and crook, thus indicating that Osiris
continued to rule, even after death and dismemberment.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DOLMEN
Huge prehistoric unworked stone resting atop two other upright stones. Used as a
gateway or entrance to the underworld. To be distinguished from Cromlech (which
is a kind of womb). The Druids apparently preferred monoliths, although
Stonehenge, an ancient Druidic temple, contained both. The reason for that is
that the Druids themselves customarily practiced on the sites of pervious,
prehistoric stone circles of unknown origin. Dolmen sites were connected to one
another by paths aligned in patterns called "ley lines" to form lattices of
occult energy.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DORJE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DRAGON SYMBOLISM
The dragon swallows up all souls that don't have Gnosis, to return them
forthwith, via its tail, to begin a new struggle toward the Gnosis, which will
save them from recurrence. In China the dragon is the Everything, the ruler of
the East and of sunrise. It stands opposite to the Tiger, which is the West and
death.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DRUID
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DRUID SPECHTOLD
New age magus and local electronic media celebrity of Newsbase BBS, San
Francisco during the mid-80's.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DRUIDIC MONTHS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DUGPAS
The "Red Cap" lamas of Tibet, who are the greatest sorcerers (and hedonists).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Between the Tree of Life and Death, qlipoth and demons inhabit the paths.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
DZYAN
A corruption of Sanskrit Dhyana, "meditation" > Chinese Ch'an, Japanese Zen. The
word, however, has entirely different meanings in each language. The Book of
Dzyan or Stanzas of Dzyan is one of the 90 treatises of the Buddhist and Pre-
Buddhist "Book of the Golden Precepts" written in Senzar, the ancient, sacred
precursor to Sanskrit, which HPB partially translated in Tibet. The Book of Klu-
Te is apparently another esoteric Tibetan work. These incredibly ancient books
comprise most of HPB's sources for her Secret Doctrine.
Major Keyhoe states that in The Book of Dzyan there is an account of beings who
arrive on earth from the sky in metal ships, build rival cities, then destroy
one another with nuclear missiles.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
E
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EASTER ISLAND
The marooned home of mankind's third race, which, after having stripped the
island of trees, vegetation and animals, resorted to cannibalism and mass
murder/suicide.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
55
ECKANKAR
Founded in 1965 by Paul Twitchell, author of The Key to Secret Worlds and former
Scientologist. Based on the Tibetan teachings of two masters, Sudar Singh of
India and Rebazar Tarzs of the Himalayas, it teaches bilocation, spirit contact,
omniscience, OBE, astral traveling and confers deification onto its masters.
Twitchell died in 1971. Eckankar's "Rod of Power" is now held by deified master
Sri Darwin Gross.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ECTENIC FORCE
Power exerted when the mind operates at a distance through the influence of the
psychode, or psychic "aether."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ECTOPLASM
The stuff, midway between matter and spirit, issued by mediums (from their
mouths) to make apparitions visible to non-psychics. Such materializations,
however short-lived, consume enormous amounts of energy and leave the medium
prostrate and febrile. When ectoplasm is touched or subjected to light, the
medium may experience considerable pain. Ectoplasm itself is a viscous, gluey
substance of a decidedly unpleasant texture. It quickly dries up and disappears.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EGREGORS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EGYPT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EIDOLON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The Egyptians maintained that we have not one but eight bodies, beyond the
merely physical:
AB -- Consciousness
KHAT -- Unconscious
REN -- Prestige/collective unconscious (the "name")
KA -- The personality, astral body
KHAIBIT -- The out-of-body body, etheric double
SEKHET -- The elan vital
KU -- Omniscience
BA -- Atman
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ELEMENTALS
57
belligerence. They have enough volatile hostility of their own not to covet
ours.
We also encounter the elementals in Thoth's "Ogdoad", the pre-creation gods,
four frog-headed males and four serpent-headed females, who rule over the
primeval waters, space/eternity, darkness and invisibility. How these connect to
"earth, fire, water and air" is a problem for the historian. The male-female
dichotomy is equally difficult to reconcile. Also, there are the four "children"
of Horus -- Hapy (baboon-headed), Duamutef (jackal-headed), Qebehsenuf (hawk-
headed and Imset (man-headed). They correspond to the tetramorph (Taurus, Leo,
Scorpio and Aquarius).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ELEMENTS
The four principles of reality. They derive their nature from the phases of the
Moon (Waxing, Full, Waning, Disappearing) and can be associated with the four
points of the compass (see TETRAMORPH), but we should be wary of trying to
assign a logical progression to them. For instance, science tends to see them
merely as matter, energy, space and time. But contemporary scientific
rationalism does not apply to ancient intuitional philosophy.
The ancients were correct to advise us not to try to separate the elements from
one another (the "unified field" theory, however, doesn't apply to this aspect
either). They take their being from the context of one another acting in unison.
Thus Earth is the materialized, magnetic form which seeks contraction (coagula)
and Air is the medium of space, freedom and dispersion (solve). Water is the
dual flow of involution and evolution, the End and the Beginning, quicksilver-
like Creation and Dissolution, Surface and Depth. The waters are divided into
the upper waters of the potential and the lower waters of the actual. Water is
the element of transition between the other elements. Fire, the plasmic state of
transmutation, is the energy behind all things.
Each element is unique in its relationship to the others and in fully exercising
that uniqueness, disappears. Water confluences the elements into a duality,
Earth contains them all and is their united totality. Air is the separation in
which they individuate themselves and vanish, while Fire is the uniqueness
itself that extracts anything from its context, particularly the separation of
"something" from Nothing, or vice-versa.
The quartering of the elements takes innumerable forms. Eliphas Levi, for
instance, even gives a tetramorphic quaternity to Alchemy (Salt, Sulphur,
Mercury and Azoth) and to the Qabalah (Macroposopus, Microposopus and the 2
"Mothers").
In Facing the Sphinx, Marie Farrington gives the number of elements as seven:
earth, water, fire, air, ether or vapor, blossom (the seminal principle) and the
Wind of Purpose (or Ghost). Amongst the Hindus the sixth was Bala-Rama, "the
representation of masculine virility, the semen virile. The 7th was the summit
and soul of the rest." In Ancient China, we observe earth, water, fire, wind and
space (wood is only a physical element). The seven Latin verbs are Velle,
Audere, Scire, Tacere, Revelare, Resurgere, Renunciare.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ELEMENTAR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ELOHIM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EMBLEM
The differences between sign, symbol, sigil, signal, seal and emblem are quite
subtle. An emblem stands for something other than itself (e.g. Stars & Stripes,
Swastika). A symbol is directly or metaphorically related in itself to that for
which it stands -- a kiss is a symbol of love, an elephant is a symbol of power,
etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EMIC REALITY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EMOTION
Most emotions (except joy) are unnecessary. The purpose of anger and fear is to
ready us for appropriate action. When no action is possible or desirable, anger
and fear are out of place and should be summarily dismissed from consciousness.
Grief should also be overcome as quickly as possible through replacement, while
depression should be overcome by activity. Not even love, in the usual sense of
the word, is necessary. Love should be the enjoyment and exaltation of sharing
with others, never a feeling of possession or jealousy, obligation or guilt.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EMPEDOCLES
(5th Century BC, of Acraga). The last of the Presocratic Shamans, whose company
included Parmenides, Zeno, Xenophanes, Heraclitus and Pythagoras. He was a
healer who sought to reconcile pragmatic this-worldliness and the metaphysical
concerns of reincarnation, transcendence, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
In the Tarot these are the Arcana IV and III respectively, Heh and Daleth. They
are the Father and Mother Gods of the Universe. On a lower plane of reality,
they are mundane authority and the world interacting with itself.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
These are Crowley's two greatest mysteries. We need to study them in tandem,
because Crowley insists that the Emperor's proper letter is not Heh, but Tzaddi,
so it must change places with The Star. Since these new attributions fly in the
face of every tradition, let's try to guess why he does this.
59
By Crowley's reckoning, the star, Kokhav = 48 (a multiple of 12), the
astrological number) or the "sphere of Venus". It represents Mercy (Gedulah or
Chesed ). It also means, "strength" and "army". Forty eight divided by four is
14, the card of Temperance (or Alchemy), where we also have the angel pouring
the waters. Qisar and Melech both translate as "Emperor". To continue with
Crowley's reckoning, qisar would equal 371 ("Evil") and melech would equal 78
(that is, 15, or The Devil). However, if we use the ordinal value of the letters
alone we get for Qisar and Melech, respectively, 60 and 33. Thirty Three is
"sorrow, weeping" and a spring or fountain." Sixty is "watch-tower", excellence,
sublimity, glory, pride, a Vision..." For kochav we get 28 or "Union, unity,
power, and the mystic Netzach. . ." If we skip Aleph we get for Qisar and
Melech, 60 and 30 ("Judah, Libra, Justice"). All of these seem appropriate
enough for "The Emperor" but still do not explain why Crowley wants him to be
the 17th card!
One reason that Crowley might have wanted to exchange The Emperor with Atu
number 17 is so that (17 = 1 + 7 = 8) The Emperor (4) would serve as the higher
exponent of Justice, which he had renamed "Adjustment" and already exchanged
with Strength at 11. In his system, that places mundane authority (the Emperor)
in the most subservient position and exalts Sirius (the Star) to the seat of
greatest power at Atu 4. Meanwhile, Strength, now Atu 11, becomes the higher
exponent of The Priestess (Atu 2), since 11 is the number of sorcery. This kind
of highly rational manipulation of universal symbols is typical of Crowley's
creative and very original approach to M/magic(k). The whole thing is extremely
round-about and vexatious and looks like nothing so much as one of those
infinitely-regressing whorls of cocaine-induced ratiocination, which were
sometimes characteristic of Crowley. His paltry excuse that tzaddi is the letter
that begins the word for Emperor "in many languages", is not meant to fool any
serious student. It occurs only in Russian, Tsar, which is but a corruption of
"Caesar."
Moreover, even if we assign the ordinal value to tzaddi (18), that translates as
the notariqon of Yehi Aur ("Let there be light!"); Chai (the "living"); the
antique serpent (Lucifer?); Hatred and "My Beloved". All of those seem strangely
fitting for The Star, whereas "four" seems more natural to the Emperor if we
think of him as the Tetragrammaton (IHVH). Apparently, that was precisely what
AC wanted to avoid -- the ascription of IHVH to the Emperor. All the same, after
all this numerology, we are no closer to the meaning of these cards. Indeed, we
are farther at sea than ever!
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EMPIRE, THE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENANTIODROMIA
Things turning into their opposites. The tendency towards psychic balance
(prostitute wanting to become a nun, clown wanting to be a tragedian actor,
etc.). Enantiodromia has been called "The Law of reverse effect". Colin Wilson
points out in Lord of the Underground that enantiodromia isn't really some deep
psychic resistance, as Jung says it is, but is merely the result of the fact
that when we are too anxious to do something well, we do it badly.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
60
ENCHIRIDION
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENNEAD
Refers generally to the Egyptian collection of the nine Heliopolitan gods: Atum,
Geb, Isis, Nephthys, Nut, Osiris, Set, Shu and Tefnut. Later, other gods were
added.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENOCHIAN
Enoch was the son of Cain, father of Methuselah. Enochian was the pre-Babel
language. Dr. Dee claimed it was the Angelic language used in his calls and
aethyrs.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENTAPHIOSIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENTASIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENTELECHY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ENTROPY
The level of entropy is the degree of disorder in a given system. This is the
reverse of the degree of information that is present. Hence negentropy is the
build-up of information, increase of meaning. Life is the attempt to reverse the
natural deterioration of matter.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EPAGOMENAL
An intercalary, or extra day not attributed to any day of the week or month and
standing outside the year. One or two epagomenals are necessary when employing
calendars with months of exactly 29 days. ("A year and a day" as the old
expression has it). In the Newtime calendar, since every month begins on Monday,
61
the epagomenal is not one of the days of the week and so has no designation
other than "non-day" or "zero-day" or "Year-end Day".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EPHAH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EPHOD
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EPIGENETIC CODING
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EPOPT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ERISTIC
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ESCHATONIC IMPLOSION
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ESSENES
Christ -- myth or man -- was only theoretically attached to the Essenes. It's an
assumption added on much after the fact. The "Messiah" of Xtianity was a
formidable figure who had to be made palatable by throwing in a generous dollop
of humanistic Essenianism.
So of course there would be similarities between the Essenes and the Xtians. The
Xtians (as they have done with every rival for human attention ever since) took
62
over the Essene trappings -- under linens, cap and bootstrap! If Xtianity could
swallow an elephant, it would. A thousand years from now, if the world still
stood, Elizabeth Clare Prophet would be hailed as the last Xtian saint because
she raked in all the clutter of 20th Century occult cults, including the Anti-
Christ, under one final, eschatological banner of Jesus.
It's interesting to me that the early Xtians also tried to swallow up their
arch-rival, Gnosticism, along with Essenianism (the Essenes and Gnostics held
many ideas in common), but while it tried to hold onto the Essenianism, it had
to spit out the Gnostic medicine.
In fact, the more I think about it, the more hope I hold out for the Keristans,
whom the Christians probably will never appropriate, because they can't. Its
founder, an old, white-bearded geezer with young, hippie-like disciples, claims
to have been told by a "voice" in his head at age 11 to form a new religion. In
the second place, their mythos -- as written in comic book bible -- has Christ
selling his (tennis) shoes to a cheap, plastic, children's doll, who is the true
Goddess. What's more, the doll is brown.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
est
Founded in 1971 by Werner Erhard (nee Jack Rosenberg), stands for "Erhard's
Seminar Training". It is a combination of Yoga, Dale Carnegie, Gurdjieff, Zen
Buddhism, Scientology, Sado-Masochism and Self-gratification.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ESTABLISHMENT FLAKE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ETIC REALITY
(RAW). Hypothetical reality that has not been filtered through a human nervous
system.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EVOCATION
When we evoke an entity, we draw upon our own stock of indwelling spirits. Thus,
to evoke is to call up what is already present in us. In the same way, we evoke
mental images from the vast storehouse within us. Presumably, then, to invoke a
mental image (as opposed to evoking it), would be to call down a vision, a ufo,
or whatever from outside. Confusion arises from the fact that self and other are
one and to draw from the Self is ultimately to draw from the All.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EVOLUTION
For the past hundred years or more a war has been going on in academic circles
between the theory of evolution and the belief in Creation. Darwinian evolution,
however, must not be applied to history. Nor must we think of Creation as
anything less than ongoing at all times, including the present moment.
Every plant, every animal, even matter itself is conscious, not merely sentient.
Consciousness, however, assumes many modalities, each having the same goal,
which is self-transcendance. The difference between an elephant and a fly is not
63
that the one is more conscious or transcending than the other, but that the
fly's attention is focused and fixed, whereas the elephant's is generalized and
reprogrammable for adapting to new circumstances. Everything is creatively
evolving upward in an infinite spiral. All Being necessarily undergoes many
transitions and existence must encompass all experience.
Ultra-Darwinist theories no longer see biological evolution as "survival of the
fittest" nor as random happenstance. Alien cells tend, if given time, to merge
cooperatively with their host. Variations of species are not preceded by steps,
but by quantum "leaps" (punctuations) that suggest recognition of environmental
exigencies and co-evolutionary trends. There is also macro-evolution. The entire
world is approaching its own evolutionary acme (Moksha). When the Bodhi-
culmination transpires, Nirvana will become available to all.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EXISTENCE
That which calls itself into being out of the Void. Most metaphysical systems
are agreed that matter is "dirt", or at least less perfect than the Void. Just
as the manifest world is infinite in its variety of potential forms of matter,
so the void is infinite in its parade of anti-potential forms of non-being. From
a strictly logistical point of view, the imbalance within the spotless Void
arises as one potentiality differentiates itself from another in its degree of
anti-substantiation and non-manifestation. Therefore, some of these
"nothingnesses" have more "substance" than others, which thereby creates an
unevenness from which a negentropic "singularity" has to develop. Thus existence
breaks forth, or "falls", in a further effort to maintain the balance, and
consequently to know itself. Thereafter, new knowledge necessarily continues to
create itself and to expand consciousness to the limits, as it were, of The
Infinite.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
EXISTENTIALISM
"Sartre's development. Concerned with man's responsibility for what he is. A man
is a sum total of his acts, not of his ambitions or potentialities. He exists
only in his fulfillment. He is confronted with choice, but is alone in his
choosing, lacking external aid, authority or value."
Webster, 1966:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Actually, the radiating eye occupies a triangle which is not really part of the
pyramid, but just resting at its top. The pyramid is unfinished. The capstone
(as in the Great Pyramid of Egypt) is missing. This is called by the Masons,
"the stone rejected by the builders". (The phrase has many other applications as
well). The reason is that the eye (spiritual consciousness) philosophically
takes the place of material substance. Some believe, than which nothing could be
farther from the truth, that the "stone rejected by the builders" is the
historical Christ. In that case the completed pyramid would amount to little
64
more than another dreary reaffirmation of the Xtian tradition. Fortunately, this
view is totally unsupported by historical, archaeological or arcane evidence.
The eye is the eye of Ra, Wudjat, which in hieroglyphics means "to make" or
"create". The symbol on the U.S. dollar bill was suggested by the founders of
America, who were not Xtians, but Freemasons and occultists. Superficially it
means that whatever we do must be inspired by superconscious insight, not by
petty quests for private power or selfish profit. It can be attributed, amongst
other things, to the bringing down of consciousness from higher to lower. John
Michell, in his Dimensions of Paradise says, "The 'Lamb in the midst of the
throne,' in Revelation 5:6 has 'seven horns and seven eyes, which are the seven
Spirits of God.' The geometer's image of this creature is the heptagram with
seven horns and seven triangles containing eyes. The eyed triangle of the
heptagon, which has a base angle (51 degrees 26 minutes) nearly the same as that
of the Great Pyramid of Egypt (51 degrees 51 minutes), may be the origin of the
mystic symbol of the eye in the pyramid." The Eye in the Triangle is the title
of Israel Regardie's biography of Aleister Crowley. (See PYRAMID).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
F
------------------------------------------------------------------------
F FACTOR
The "F" stands for futility. It is the common sense (which negative thinking
perpetuates), that everything is bound to fail unless unflagging energy,
perseverance and will are brought to bear. The strong derive their strength from
this. The weak derive their weakness from it.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FAIRY
One of the reasons that "fairy" became a derogatory epithet for homosexual is
that ordinary society pretends to pride itself on its own ordinariness and lack
of originality and is afraid to confess any interest in the possibility of the
extraordinary. Beyond that, the Celtic Irish believe(d) that the "little people"
inhabit a beautiful land of "the ever young". These and similar notions led to
the natural association of one with the other. Wm. Butler Yeats and Sir Arthur
Conan Doyle, however, claimed to have incontrovertible evidence in support of
the existence of fairies. More recently, Jacques Vallée has advanced the idea
that today's ufos are the descendents of yesterday's fairies.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FAITH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FANG SHU
65
Ancient, pre-Taoistic Chinese magic. Practitioners were known as Fang Shih and
were skilled in summoning spirits and casting spells.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FAMILIAR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FARADAY CAGE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FEI CHI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FIBONACCI SERIES
10 LET F = 0 + 1
20 LET N = N + F
30 PRINT N
40 LET F = F + N
50 PRINT F
60 GOTO 20
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FICINO, MARSILIUS
15th Century philosopher best known for having translated Plato and the
Neoplatonists, as well as Hermes Trismegistos. He thought that the world was an
"emanation of God" and that one could draw heavenly influences by simply
meditating on the planets.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FIRE CIRCLE
FISH
In The Vision and the Voice we learn that the fish was associated with Xtianity
by the Romans because the Xtians came from Syria and brought with them a new
strain of "leprosy" (actually syphilis), thought to be caused by eating fish. A.
C. goes on to say that the Greek letters spelling out "fish", ichthys, do not
correspond, as popularly believed, to Iesous Christos Theou Uios Soter (J.C.,
Savior, Son of God), but to a notariqon of 5 Egyptian Gods. Undoubtedly, these
would be: Isis, Khepri, Thoth, Hu (or Horus) and Set.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FLAT EARTH SOCIETY OF COVENANT PEOPLES CHURCH (International Flat Earth Research
Society)
Also called the "Society of Zetetics". It is the conviction of this group that
the sphericity of the world is merely a scientific theory inconsistent with the
facts. Science, as opposed to pragmatic technology, is an unfounded religion,
and its teaching that the earth is a spinning ball is mere superstition. Apart
from obvious mountains and valleys the continents form virtually a planar disc,
with the north pole as the center and the south pole as the circumference --
airplanes "all fly level on the Plane Earth".
The question as to whether reality conforms to consensus or to individual
conviction is less important than the fact that the Flat Earthers represent to
the majority of people (occult-minded and otherwise), the epitome of "nonsense".
A proper subject for meditation, therefore, might be to learn how to view
"error" from unconventional points of perspective.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FLATTENED CHAOS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FLOOD
The Flood or Deluge that encompassed the ancient world can be seen as an analogy
for a flood of ignorance that engulfed civilization and wiped out the wisdom of
the ages. Perhaps the same may be said of Atlantis and Lemuria. Noah and
Deucalion are repositories of the ancient traditions and the "ark" that saved
the animals is nothing more than Nature itself, which was not involved (as it is
today) in the destruction of man's world.The Flood was the Ending, also, of the
Mayan 4th Sun.
Manetho, in Sothis, concurs in relating the Flood to the "Flood of Ignorance"
which has been increasingly shittifying the world for century after century.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
67
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FOCUS OF INFECTION
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FOHAT
(Chinese). It is odd how we think we understand cause and effect, when there's
no logical reason to expect any given act to have an effect on anything else.
Only repeated experience tells us that A acting upon B produces C. But
obviously, there must be something that links the cause to the effect. Fohat is
the link between spirit and matter, subject and object, cause and effect. It is
the "Prince in the Chariot", the primordial LUX, the cosmic electricity energy
polarized and born anew at every juncture point of opposites. It is the vital
bridge provided by "Divine Intelligence" in action, the force behind the
manifesting One Cosmos and that "oneness" which glues the very atoms together.
It is the consciousness that is the origin and end of all transient forms.
According to the ancients it is the gliding, hissing serpent of the Hebrew
letter Teth . The fohatic impulse not only "hardens" the atoms, but it also
injects mind into matter.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FOOL, THE
Arcanum number zero, lettered Aleph, the 11th Pathway between Kether and
Chokmah. The designation is not so much one of folly or mindlessness, but rather
of the Buddhistic or Taoistic "No-Mind". He is thus an exponent of the
Unmanifest or Transcendent. We might also remember that the Tarot first came to
light in Italy and Italian word for this Arcanum is il Matto, "The Madman". Only
madness can permit me to risk life, happiness, salvation and sanity itself on
the thin promise of enlightenment, much less on the chimaera of magic. On a
lower level of understanding, The Fool is the psyche between incarnations,
recently divested or not yet possessed of earthly qualities. As such he
represents ultimate faith in whatever comes, total freedom from the "lust for
results". At the lowest level of understanding, The Fool is simply one who has
no ambition or status and thus serves as an exemplar of social rebellion.
Just as the black dog is our guide through the darkness of the unknown, so the
white dog is the conscious (and annoying) intrusion, usually ignored, that
reminds us of impending danger. The conscious mind is our companion in the
journey to the higher self.
Crowley calls this one of the three forms of "Light" (in which no evil is
possible). It is the hidden light, "wisdom of God", and is mere foolishness to
men.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FORGOTTEN ONES
The Great Old Ones, the Maatians, of the Lovecraftian system, sleeping
restlessly "outside" in the Ophidian current, Universe B, or the sunken city of
R'lyeh. They await the unholy hour when they can seize rulership of the earth.
The names of some of them are She, No, Nexhagus, Loroo, Nagrikshamish. There is
also Hastur, "Him who is not to be named, who shall come again from the dark
star which is near Aldebaran in the Hyades. " There is Shub-Niggarath, a
"horrible travesty on a fertility god or goddess". And there is Yig, the
terrible snake-god, Atlach-Nacha of the spider shape, Gnoph-Hek the hairy thing
otherwise known as Rhan-Tegoth, Caugnar Faugn theVampire feeder, the Hell hounds
68
of Tindalos which "prowl the angles of time" and the monstrous Yog-Sothoth,
whose iridescent globes conceal the primal horror beneath.
Out of the fearsome abysses of the unconscious and its primitive pulsations rise
these dark Gods. They are related to the elements and their media, "supramundane
faculties", liberating them from the restrictions of time/space. Indeed, they
existed before Space itself. They created the Chaos from which they created
themselves, by their own bootstraps. Far, far from the Tree, they slumber
amniotically in the watery abyss.
"The Ancient Ones who remained on earth were imprisoned forever, exiled from the
star-kingdom of Betelgeuse, under the 5-pointed star (see ARRA) which was the
seal of the Elder Gods, " says HPL. The "Elder Gods" are beneficent, unlike the
Great Old Ones.
Insofar as it even knows of their existence, Xtianity must obviously consider
the Forgotten Ones "Satanic". But we made the mistake of deliberately ignoring
them, says Grant and others, which now allowed them to flourish quietly,
unchecked until they are now vast and menacing to all of life. Worship by
multitudes of "inferior stock and physiological mutation" has fortified them
grotesquely. Any barricades betwen mankind and the "paralysing horror they
represent" are imaginary or crumbling. The Forgotten Ones have cut gigantic
archways through which the GOO and their extraterrestrial allies can march on
their own or can be summoned. Continue to repress them, we may, but they will
eventually burst free and take over our minds. They can shower us with magical
powers, so tell us the black brothers, but the higher we reach for the light,
the farther down into the darkness our foundations will sink.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FRACTALS
One's life, the history of the world, everything moves towards deeper
complexity, to an endpoint of total complexification, in fact. And yet this same
complexification is merely the result of an endless repetition of an individual
pattern -- unique but infinitely regressing. "The creation of extremely complex
structures from simple, similar operations is the essence of fractal
progressions," explains Terence McKenna. "Time also has this fractal quality --
self-similar processes are imbedded in similar natural fractal processes at
higher and higher levels of expression in space and time -- the larger
implication of this fractal perspective is that the whole history if humanity is
moving towards an endpoint -- an apocalypse, a momentous event which will cast
everything that preceded it in some kind of new light, make everything new and
morally exonerate the historical horror that is necessary to reach that moment."
(See TIMESCAPE.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FREEMASON
One is to think of man as the actual builder of the universe. The Freemason is
liberated from the concept that man is the prisoner of physical and metaphysical
laws and restrictions.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FULMEN
In the alchemical process, clouds of smoke, thunder and lightning are not
invariably the trappings of charlatans. The fulmination of metals is a means of
purging them of gross elements (iron and copper feces) through smelting. The
degree of perfection obtained is indicated by the color and strength of the
explosion.With the final educement of all foreign substances there is a radiant
purple splendor, lightning, reverberation and a release of vast clouds of
sulphur.
69
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FULMINATE OF MERCURY
The explosive that killed Jack Parsons. (Hg(ONc)2H2O) is used as a detonator for
other explosives. Obtained from Ethyl Alcohol + Mercuric Nitrate. Silver
Fulminate, a similar chemical, is used in firecrackers. Hunchback: If a very
drunk person were to swallow Mercuric Nitrate, would he explode?
------------------------------------------------------------------------
FUTANT
A throw-forward mutant, born ahead of his time (e.g. Nicola Tesla, Giordano
Bruno, Leonardo Da Vinci, etc.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
G
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GALILEAN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GANESHA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GARGOPHIAS
The 13th guardian of the dark Tarot. A parallel of the High Priestess. Grant
calls it batrachian witchcraft, Hecate's, the goddess Frog-Head. As the High
Priestess watches implacably at the cliff edge of the Abyss for the magician to
make his solitary leap, Gargophias waits for him to leap into the depths of
sexual union (the mating of Chaos and Time). Her magic is dream interpretation
and clairvoyance. The disease of Gargophias is menstrual malfunction.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GEBURAH
The fifth qabalistic power chakra on the Tree of Life. It is important because
it stands at the top of the pillar of "severity," just under the triangle of the
70
upper "temple." It may also be said to represent one of the serpents entwined
about the caduceus. Geburah (courage, heroism) is the abode of Mars and
represents the will, discipline and perseverance necessary for the progress of
the magician.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GEHENNA
Hell. The incinerator for rubbish. Here children were sacrificed to Moloch.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GEMATRIA
The Judaic esoteric tradition of interpreting words with the same numerical
value as being significantly related.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GEMINI
A bipolar sign of opposites, hence the "twins." It is both creative (the twin
with the lyre) and destructive (the twin with the club). It is the sign of all
things pertaining to Hermes, Mercury or Thoth, that is, of intercourse between
differing segments of reality or society and the intellect or intelligence:
writing, communications media, bohemia, detection, medicine, fashion,
crossroads, markets, theaters, dens of thieves, traveling, etc. Its element, of
course, is air and its animal sometimes ascribed to the monkey (Thoth, the
babboon-headed).
Well-known Geminians include: Mesmer, Elsa Maxwell, Bob Dylan, Emerson, Bennett
Cerf, Gucci, Duchess of Windsor, Pauline Kael, Escher, Stravinsky, Pascal, Judy
Garland, Velikovsky, Peter the Great, Allen Ginsberg, Josephine Baker, Christine
Jorgensen, Bob Hope, Herman Wouk, Dante, Arthur Conan Doyle, Isadora Duncan,
Dionne Quintuplets, Marilyn Monroe, Marquis de Sade, Sartre, Jefferson Davis.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GENOME
The entire gene-picture of man. So far we have named about 1% of the 1,000 or
more genetic elements. To know them all means we would know the secrets of life,
death and evolution.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GEOMANCY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GIANTS
(See NEPHELIM.) in Norse mythology, we read how the giants plotted to bring down
the Gods and sent three evil giantesses to Asgard. Gulveig-Hoder became Loki's
wife and counseled him in evil. Thus we see that it is not Judaism alone that
attributes evil to woman -- but this is no more than a seeming, for the Yin is
71
only the negative, the absence that must stand apart from anything in order to
give it substance. The Greeks called the giants "Titans" and amongst the jews
they were the nephelim. So we must distinguish between the giants and the gods.
The giants are the demiurgic forces, while the Gods are the higher aspects of
man, his higher consciousness. The giants are also the "demons" of the
Unconscious.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GLAMOUR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GNOMES
As of this writing I have not yet begun preparation for the other initiations,
so I know only the earth intelligences: the gnomes, those peculiar dwarfs, known
to Paracelsus, who dwell in the earth and are the guardians of its treasures.
They have rather a "Gypsy" nature and gather festively at times in lovely hidden
valleys covered with wildflowers and secret, sunlit meadows midway between the
dreaming planes and the Malkuthian sphere, which is the Enigma of "The World."
Children often dream of the "good people" or seem to remember them from the dim,
nostalgic past of their infancy. Their friendship guarantess you will never want
and with the gnomes in attendance, physical objects no longer break down when
you use them or get in the way when you no longer need them. If you want the
gnomes to protect you, they will provide a very strong physical defense system -
- good locks and keys, thick walls, secrecy, etc. Confrontation and violence,
however, are not their fortes.
Forunately, the gnomes are easily accessible, as they spring up continually from
the earth around us. They are as eager to "use" us as we are to "use" them. The
reason is that somehow the gnomes complement us and we help one another
reciprocally by earthing and releasing opposing 'volutions (our e-volution,
their in-volution) -- or rather, our entropy is grounded in the elementals while
negentropy from them is anodically charged in spirit for us. The result in us is
matter released in the form of creation, accumulation of wealth, whereas from us
they learn how to collect energy into stasis or density.
In simpler terms, they are engaged in a downward spiral of involution toward
ultimate crystallization. We, on the other hand, are engaged in the upward,
evolutionary struggle towards total liberation of the spirit from its prison of
flesh. Both we and the earth elementals occupy contrasting realms of reality
normally inaccessible to one another. So the gnomes seek to unload on us the
burden of their physical powers and material riches, as we seek to transcend the
appetites of the flesh. In the mysterious exchange between our different levels
of being the gnomes acquire from us the concretizations they need in order to
shed abstraction and draw more deeply inward to their infinitely dense centers.
72
We, on the other hand, discover a new respect within ourselves for the physical
universe and a subtler understanding of how it operates. This enables us to work
creatively with forms until we can free ourselves and break out of matter
altogether. By learning how to stand on the earth firmly, trusting and depending
upon its support, we can make successful launchings into "outer space".
The simplest rituals will attract earth elementals. They appreciate kindness and
will meet generosity with redoubled generosity of their own. But you must avoid
coarseness, grouchiness or impatience of any kind. Gnomes dislike these traits
intensely. And any hint of laziness or greed acts as a repellant and the
complementing is aborted.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GNOSIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GOAT
The goat has been chosen as the symbol of lust because, as Horapollo observed,
it mates and even ejaculates (in sterility) the very first week after its birth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GOD
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GOD COMPARISON
The theory of Monogenesis, or the single origin of language, was first proposed
by the Italian linguist Alfredo Trombetti in his book L'Unità del Origine del
Linguaggio, published in Bologna circa 1900 and still unavailable in English.
Trombetti hoped one day to see a lexicon of universal word comparisons, but in
his day all his energies were absorbed in fighting an academic establishment
that strongly resisted new ideas. Babel Rebuilt (as yet unpublished) is my
attempt to provide such a lexicon of juxtapositions. It is the source of these
words for God taken from various languages and juxtaposed strictly by similarity
of form, without regard to family origin or historical sequence.
U Semitic root (the heavens, light, fire, rain)
iu Indo-Germanic root
ljú Margi (GOD)
ju-Piter Latin (the Father-God)
lúvéis Oscan
Jao Old Hebrew (as in El-Shadeh-Yao, God Almighty
Jehovah Hebrew from IHVH, hayah, to be or ihoah, self-existent)
Johonaaeff Navajo (Ruler of the Day, ji = day, hence: The Sun)
Jaun Basque (God)
Jin(koa) Basque (Lord on High)
Dingirre Sumerian (gods)
Janus Roman (god)
Ju-mala Finnish (GOD)
jowl Cornish devil
(2)
74
dyau Sanskrit (heaven; sky)
diyu Tartar (demon)
Déwô Javanese (GOD)
Deok Kafir
teuctli Aztec (leader; god)
taku Sioux (Something)
dux Latin (leader
Dxui Bushman (name of a god)
Dievs Latvian (GOD)
odevë Kodagu (master; god)
deva(s) Sanskrit
O Devel, O Del Gypsy (The God)
Ziu Old High German (war-god)
Zeus Greek
theos Greek
Thoth Egyptian (god; Tehuti)
teotl Aztec
(Bhagawan) thudu Telugu
themugu Telugu
Temayawet Cupeño
Metod Beowulf Lord division of Self and World and the assumption that what
is good for the Self is all that matters. Good magic is based on the
understanding that Self and World are one. Therefore, what is good for the world
is automatically good for the Self. Intelligent though that sounds on the
surface, it's illogical and amounts to wishful thinking. Whats good for the head
isn't necessarily good for the feet and what's good for the world isn't always
good for the self. Exploiters of evil are quick to point out the disadvantages
of self-sacrifice and altruism.
The wicked prosper because Evil is ignorant and any development of the ego,
being an act of ignorance, automatically rides over doubt. Thus egotism propels
itself forward with confidence. Egolessness, on the other hand, lacking self-
assurance, falters and is exploited. So we come back to words. Illusion,
ignorance and darkness are just synonyms for the Ego, whose main job is to
protect the body from destruction. Enlightenment is a synonym for the
elimination of the ego and the relingquishment of its protection. From a
materialistic point of view, therefore, the functions of Good and Evil are
reversed. It is only the highly advanced spiritual understanding that accepts
death not merely as inevitable, but as a strange paradox: the non-existence of
existence. What we mean by advanced spiritual understanding is the recognition
that since death is also an illusion, then there really is no separation of self
from other.
We really are crucibles for the testing of character. If we maintain our
materialistic selfishness, we're heaped with worldly rewards. If we maintain our
faith in self-denial, we earn injustice, if not crucifixion. Good can triumph on
earth only if the Self really does benefit more from its connection to the world
than from its separation. So we have to move beyond Good and Evil, to the World
beyond the world and to the Self beyond the self, to the ultimate paradoxical
truth: the only self that matters is the individual, or that very idiosyncrasy
which maintains the strongest expression of self within the context of World or
Other.
Self draws strength, in other words, not from identity, but from contrast. This
means that if we want to raise the self to a higher level, we somehow have to
raise the world first. Archimedes can do nothing in an anthill. The materialist,
on the other hand, being concerned only with his isolation, sees the world in a
parasitic fashion, strictly as his life-support system. Thus Evil stands
revealed as self-preoccupation at the expense of the world and Good as the Self
striving to be an enhancement of the world. More esoterically, we can define
Positive Evil as that which goes against the evolutionary current, Negative Evil
as the opposition of an interior momentum not yet overcome.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
75
GRACE
An invention of the Xtians for resolving the dilemma of the Elect, or those
saved who did nothing to earn salvation. It is the equivalent of Greek charisma,
a gift.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GRACE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Hierarchy of Adepts who form the inner government of the world, guided by Secret
Chiefs, according to Blavatsky. Mather's and Crowley's Golden Dawn was
supposedly the first outer brotherhood and its Temple Masters were considered
members. The Rosicrucians were the second order and the Silver Star (A:.A:.) the
third and innermost order.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The spellings are somewhat different from what you might expect:
Signs Planets
Kriou (Aries) Helios (Sun)
Taurou (Taurus) Selenes (Moon)
Didymon (Gemini) Hermou (Mercury)
Karkinou (Cancer) Aphrodites (Venus)
Leontos (Leo) Areos (Mars)
Parthenou (Virgo) Dios (Jupiter)
Zygou (Libra) Kronou (Saturn)
Skorpiou (Scorpio)
Toxotou (Sagittarius)
Aigokerou (Capricorn)
Hydrochoou (Aquarius)
Ichthyon (Pisces)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
GRIMOIRE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Born 1873 or 1877, died 1949. Founder of the Institute for the Harmonious
Development of Man. Taught that the average man is asleep and must continually
be awakened. Also, in order to become a master of oneself, one must become a
magician. His system of octaves revealed that every activity is divided into 8
stages, like the musical scale. We fail because we flag and wilt with the weaker
notes and do not try to come back in with the stronger succeeding notes. Views
from the Real World, which was written by his disciples, is probably better than
his own writings at explaining his teachings.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
H
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HAD
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HADIT
The Chaldean version of Set, according to Grant, and the divine seed of
manifestation (the divine spermatozoon or serpent). As Nuit, according to
Crowley, is "infinite space," so Hadit is the infinitely small or atomic center.
By extension, Hadit is the equivalent of Lucifer, who is his own Holy Guardian
Angel and the "seed" of our hell-world. Hadit can also be the manifestation of
Nuit, as the child, Horus, is the manifestation of the Mother. The Isis-Horus
connection to Xtian madonna and child, after all, is well established.
Finally, Hadit can stand for the entire Aeon that humanity has just endured: The
Age of Pisces, Christ, Buddha, Mohammed and Osiris.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HADITH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HADDO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HAI
77
(Hé, or "window.") Another name for Yog-Sothoth, the window to the other
universe.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HALLELUJAH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HALLOWE'EN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The 12th Arcanum, lettered Mem. This is the sacrificed God (Odin, Christ, etc.).
We should observe that the figure is upside-down: divine consciousness brought
to earth. In other words the sacrifice is the transformation of hell. Every
magician is a Hanged Man. the purpose of the Will is to surrender it to the
service of higher energy. The letter Mem refers to the "water" in which self is
dissolved. Everything is composed of twelve basic components, every act of
twelve steps, every wheel of 12 spokes. Therefore, the Hanged Man is the crown
of the earth experience. Thirteen is the harvest of the completed twelve, the
cosmic acceptance of the sacrifice. Hereafter, the soul moves on the second half
of the Tarot's wheel. In Crowley's terms, this is the "Son Slain," one of the
aspects of Life.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HANSA (KALAHAMSA)
White goose or swan, vehicle of the Asvins. Corresponds in the West to the
pelican of alchemy.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HAOMA
78
Ancient Persian divinity choosing to manifest as a sacred (psychedelic?) plant
(similar to, if not the same as) the Hindu soma. Mixed with milk and water it
conferred immortality.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEALING
Once a conscious effort has successfully warded off an impending disease, the
disease will immediately seek re-entry via the pathways of the unconscious,
through some new area of neglect or even through the very point of weakness
whose sentry has just been discharged as "no longer necessary." (Also see
PREMISE.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEART
The heart was the center of instinct and the precious kernel of immortality and
it was this which was weighed in the balance against the feather of truth, known
as Maat. For the Ancient Egyptians the purpose of life was the perception of
Truth which could only be gained by the cultivation of discernment and the
guiding of the instincts. This was the whole meaning of initiation. Everything
served that end. So the heart of enlightenment was the cultivation of
discernment. To fail to develop this power of perception was the greatest sin
and carried the automatic penalty of that heart's immediate and total
annihilation. (Adapted from R. G. Torrens's The Golden Dawn, The Inner
Teachings.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEAVEN
The positive spiral. The condition of the world as seen through the lens of
mysticism or magic mushroom. All infinite connections bespeak a shimmering
reflection of the holomovement in the individual points of light. The celestial
nature of the lesser worlds is clearly seen to sparkle all the way through to
their deepest, richest interiors.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HECATE
The goddess of the new moon or darkness (as opposed to Diana, goddess of light
of the full moon).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEBDOMAD
(The sphere of the Demiurge, lower than the Ogdoad.) Seven divides perfectly
into the elemental quaternity from the 28 days of the lunar month. Set of seven,
as the seven planets, the seven metals, Shakespeare's seven ages of man. In
Mithraism: the 7 ceremonial steps. The Ziggurat of seven-metalled planes.
Stairway of Alchemy: Quicksilver, Copper, Iron, Tin, Lead, Silver, Gold --
corresponding to the successive triads of the Tarot. The Gnostics and others
claimed that the elohim were the seven gods of Creation.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEBREW ZODIAC
79
The names of the signs and planets (with planetary angels) are as follows:
Sign Planet and Planetary Angel
Aries Taleh Sun Shemesh -- MICHAEL
Taurus Shur Moon Levanah -- GABRIEL
Gemini Thomim Mercury Kokab -- RAPHAEL
Cancer Sartan Venus Nogah -- HANAEL
Leo Ariah Mars Madim -- ZAMAEL
Virgo B'thulah Jupiter Tzedek -- SACHIEL
Libra Moznaim Saturn Shabbathai -- CASSIEL
Scorpio Arqrav
Sagitarrius Qashat
Capricorn G'di
Aquarius D'li
Pisces Dagim
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEKAU
The Egyptian word for "Magic." Hekau also are the sacred words of banishment
used by the sun god (or the dead person) in his passage through the 12 dungeons
of the Underworld. (From the Am tuat, or "Book of the Gates," according to
Drury). The word probably derives from h-, "candle" (or wick), an artificial
light for the ka, "soul or spirit."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HELL
The negative vortex. The state of the world as it awaits the transmogrifying
ourgos of the magician. In the infernal state, the world contains an infinite
number of physical, mental and spiritual torments that usually pass unnoticed by
the damned who have grown accustomed to them. Only when some new and
particularly hideous catastrophe strikes do the victims remember where they are
and where they have been all along.
Hell is as much an illusion as earth. There is a possibly apocryphal anecdote
related by Mrs. Melitta Rubia, a latterday disciple of HPB, in which she dreams
that she has been transported to a lovely, warm garden of dazzling beauty in
which all of her wants are provided. Here she dwells, day after halcyon day, in
sweet idleness and luxury. One evening, as she descends to the crystal clear
lake to drink the divine nectar that crowns her perfect existence, she suddenly
discovers that she has been living a hideous delusion. The truth is that she is
really a loathesome parasite whose lovely garden is simply her host's skin and
the crystal lake her host's bloodstream.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HELLEBORE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HELL-HOUND
80
There have been many. Cerberus and Orthos, the guardians of the Gates of Hell
are notorious enough, but there was also Garn, the Moon dog; the hellhound of
Arwan; Falinis, the hound of Lush; the Hound of the Baskervilles; the whelp of
King Ioruaidhe (who turned water into wine) -- and numerous others, from Egypt's
most exalted Psychopomp of the Dead, the Dog-God, Anubis, to Walt Disney's
gentle pup, Pluto, who was indeed named (tongue well in cheek) after the self-
same God of the Underworld.
Dogs are quite naturally associated with death and the lower reaches. It is
fitting that it should be they, after death, who conduct us who led them in
life. Not only do our canine friends watch over us by night, guarding against
every intruder and nocturnal peril that menaces the sleeping household, but they
are quite at home in underground caves and even expert at digging. They are
unperturbed by corpses or corruption. And, although their vocabularies of human
words are exasperatingly limited, they are, as every dog owner knows, fluent in
the silent, non-linguistic communication of ESP.
For the above and many other reasons, demons were once believed to take the form
of dogs, especially black dogs. The Devil himself, in fact, has a black dog as
his companion. White dogs are more likely the companions of white magic.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEMETHTERITH
The fifteenth sentinel of the Qliphotic Tree. She is the mother or wet-nurse.
Her magickal gift is astrology. Grant says she was raped by a variant of the
Holy Ghost and, whilst fleeing from him, fell over backwards, whereupon her
breasts became the two streams of Aquarius. Corresponds to the Empress.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEMLOCK SOCIETY
There are those who believe that suicide is never an option and death "advice"
is strictly black magic. But this world is not the Garden of Eden. The Cathari
were right to teach that reproduction is a crime on this plane of reality. The
Buddha was right to offer Nirvana as an escape from the wheel of incessant life
and rebirth. The only reason for anyone to remain in Hell (which is what our
world is) is if he is capable of transforming it -- however slightly, however
temporarily. Those who merely suffer or who only make others suffer need not be
encouraged to remain.
At any rate, the American Hemlock Society publishes a book entitled Let Me Die
Before I Wake containing accounts of those who chose suicide when they had a
fatal disease. The British Hemlock Society's publication, we've been told, is
quite explicit, but we understand that if we peruse the watered-down American
version carefully enough, we can extrapolate medications and dosages from it.
Datura, which is easily obtainable, is apparently the poison of choice. The
problem with most poisons is proper dosage. Too much may be rejected before it
does its job and too little can cause such permanent and incapacitating brain or
liver damage that further opportunities for experimentation may lie beyond the
subject's capacity. There is said to be an acupuncture point that can cause
instant death, but its secret is most fiercely guarded.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HENOTHEISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HERMES
81
Since he connects all the others and serves as a link between human and divine
reality, he is the greatest of the Gods. His counterpart occurs in all
mythologies (Odin, Mercury, Thoth). Hermes is the God of language, hence the
inspiration of all writers (also frequently the pen-name of ancient writers who
felt they were merely the God's amanuensis). It was Thoth-Hermes whom the
scribes of Egypt always honored with a libation of ink before beginning their
day's work.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HERMES TRISMEGISTUS
(Probably Apollonius of Tyana.) His major teaching: "As above, so below." (Or as
we can add, "As within, without.")
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HERMETICISM
(From Hermes Trismegistus.) The Hermetic sciences are Astrology, Magic, Qabalah
and (ultimately) Egyptology. Hermetic philosophy is to be distinguished from
Scholastic philosophy ("scholastic" meaning that which was taught in schools)
derived from Aristotle, who believed all questions could be resolved either by
reason or by debate stemming from a logic based on never-to-be-questioned
premises (axioms). Science as we know it today is neither scholastic nor
hermetic, but is founded strictly on empirical evidence. Hermetic science is
based on universal symbols present within the collective unconscious and
therefore available to inner revelation, rather than to ordinary objective
experience. Hermes is, like the metal mercury, the amalgamation and
contradiction of scattered opposites, the divine marriage (or hieros gamos) of
polarities. As the God of messengers, he is a fitting symbol also of the Western
version of Eastern Taoism and Buddhism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HERMIT, THE
The 9th Arcanum, lettered yod. As the Yod (or "I") of IHVH it is the singularity
of all things. It's evident that there is only one being at the center and no
other identity is real. The dark-cloaked figure who, knowing that self outside
the center is but illusion, shuns outer reality in order to concentrate on the
center of the cosmos within.
The Hermit (zodiacal sign of the Virgin) was to Crowley, " the hidden god" that
is present in every man, the dormant genius it was his hope eventually to
release. The Hermit of the Tarot is not just an ordinary wanderer nor does he
represent even a Holy Man, living in the desert, eating locusts and wild honey.
A true hermit has no need to set himself apart, even in a crowd there is only
himself.
Each of us is a hermit!
Or rather, each of us is the One Hermit, who is God, utterly without company in
the entire reaches of time and space. For our individual differences are but
illusion and the being who looks out of the million-windowed room is the One
Mind that inhabits all things. Teachers draw our attention to the endless line
of identical cowled monks marching single file up the icy mountains of
consciousness and then down into the valleys of death.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HERU/HRU
Heru, or Hru, is the "Great Angel of the Tarot" and means Horus. (Harpocrates =
Child of Horus).
82
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HET CONSPIRACY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEURESIS
In the Mysteries, this refers to the "finding" of the lost body of Osiris.
"Heuristic" now means "proceeding by hunches, in the face of many possibilities
or simply by general rules of thumb..."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEXAGRAM
Apart from its association with the Star of David, the 6 points remind us of the
3 dichotomies: Will and Passivity; Rejection and Choice; Light and Dark.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEXOR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HEZBOLLAH
"Army of Allah." It should be noted that though this translates as "The party of
Allah," the Hezb- is also a chapter of the Koran, so it is, thus, a "chapter" of
Allah. This would be the equivalent of our calling the U.S. Army "The Army of
God."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HIEROGLYPHICS
(From Greek: "sacred carvings.") To the ancients all writing was magical or
sacred, insofar as it could relate or influence events happening at distances of
time (past, present, future) and space (heaven or earth). But to the Egyptians,
particularly, their language was sacred already and Thoth-given. Pharaoh himself
was "The Great Word." Indeed it is from the Egyptians that the Greek Logos
("word") came to have its occult meaning. The Egyptian word for "word," medu,
also meant a "sceptre," "magic wand" or "sacred staff." Medu-Neter =
"hieroglyph."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HIEROPHANT
The 5th Enigma, lettered vav. The power of the priest and established religion.
We should not discredit established religion entirely. Without tradition,
distorted and perverted though it may be after the passage of millenia, there
would be no vehicle of transmission for the most ancient wisdom. Tradition is
essential if we are not continuously to repeat the same mistakes. By this
yardstick we can commend the Vatican and the Orthodox Rabbinical libraries, but
83
cannot criticize Islam enough for its arrogant destruction of historical
material.
But popes and priests are only lowly mediators, after all, go-betweens
representing human greed as often as divine inspiration. It is not their job to
transform the world, but merely to maintain the status quo. Imagination is not
their strong suit. Crowley presents the papal figureas pointing downwards rather
than upwards, to show that the pope is a curse, rather than a blessing to
mankind.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HIGH PRIESTESS
The 2nd Arcanum, lettered gimel. She stands above the Abyss on the Tree of Life,
between Kether and Tiphareth, but her path crosses Daäth, as does none other;
thus she herself represents the Abyss. Since Daäth is a trackless desert, it is
fitting that she be associated with Gimel, the "camel." Two is the unholy number
of the split between heaven and earth. The High Priestess has been equated with
the lunar goddess, but principally suggests Isis, the Goddess of the Occult. We
must never forget, however, that Isis is a fluid Goddess who changes identity,
analogically, with many other divinities. Such fluid changeability is a basic
characteristic of the Moon.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOCHSTETTER
A person who narrows his skepticism to a single person or object and decides
that that person or object is too dangerous for the public. Nothing, apparently,
can exist without its opposite number. John A. Keel, in his Disneyland of the
Gods, writes at length of a man named Hendershot who, in 1928, produced a small
machine that ran on "the earth's magnetic field." He demonstrated that it worked
without wires, fuel or batteries and he managed to win substantial support for
the device, until a certain Dr. Frederik Hochstetter, from his own home town,
began to follow him about, hound and harass him. Finally he succeeded in forcing
Hendershot and his machine to disappear forever underground. Keel makes the
interesting point that whenever anyone attempts to make an impact on the world,
to promote a new idea or demonstrate some unusual achievement, whetehr it be in
science, metaphysics, culinary art or stamp collecting, there inevitable arises
along with the champion a personal, sinister shadow-enemy or crank in the form
of a Hochstetter who will make it his business to discredit him at every
opportunity. The same uniqueness that produces the innovator also produces his
mirror-imaged, tailor-made destroyer.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOD
The 8th qabalistic power chakra on the Tree of Life. It is intelligence and
reason, abode of Mercury. It means "splendor," that is, the bedazzlement of the
mind.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOLOGRAMMATON
"The part contains the all." Man, for instance, is a hologram of the earth. What
we do to the earth we do to ourselves. A cancer cell is a hologram of the body.
In a short time it can transfer its qualities to all the normal cells of the
body, thus making them cancerous as well.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
84
HOLOMOVEMENT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
When magi speak of "the knowledge and conversation of the Holy Guardian Angel,"
they refer to that particular manifestation of spirit which is their own
experience. The principle is the same, whether it is the great Aumakua of the
Hawaiian Hunas or the visitation of the Archangel Gabriel for someone in our
culture. The purpose of M/magic(k) is not worship, but transformation. And the
purpose in evoking the Holy Guardian Angel is to obtain information that is
essential to the work of transformation. (See AUGOEIDES.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOMOPLASMATE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOMUNCULUS
A "little man" (less than a foot high) artificially created. The magician's
sperm, along with other materials such as bones and fur, is placed in a vessel
and buried in a heap of mare dung for forty days. At the end of this period the
vessel is removed, opened and fed more blood. It is then replaced for an
additional 40 days, with the heat from the decomposing dung providing the heat
to begin spontaneous generation. This should produce an embryo. In Crowley's
version of the Hermit, the wheat germ is a symbol of the homunculus seed. The
medieval homunculus obsession finds its counterpart in modern man's attempt to
create artificial intelligence and robots.
Throughout history, moreover, there has been a constant search for the "perfect
image". This led to all the schools of painting and sculpture. With the
invention of photography in the 19th Century, the quest took a new turn and the
image became more and more subjective with cubism, futurism, abstract art, etc.
With the cinema the image not only assumed exactness but also acquired motion
and sound. The image, now perfected at last, turned to cartoons and animated
film in which the perfected image could not be extended into the fantastic and
bizarre. Attempts to create "realistic" cartoons and animations is a mistake
because that interferes with the creative and experimental character of the
image.
We should recognize that virtual reality has, in the last few years, produced
homunculus-like images of more certain creation. Cloning plus genetic re-
scripting could in actuality create a homunculus of exactly the sort that
medieval alchemy struggled to produce.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
85
HOOR-PAAR-KRAAT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HORIZONTAL TIME
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HORUS
As god of the rising sun, he is the Egyptian version of the Greek god, Apollo
(Ra is the noon-day sun). His eye, lost in avenging Seth's murder of his
brother, Osiris, is the symbol of his sacrifice (the sun is endlessly self-
sacrificing). As Seth imprisons us, Horus liberates us.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOUDINI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HOUSES OF MERCURY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HU
86
Deity personifying authoritarian utterances (therefore, sometimes signifying the
Sphinx). In the Egyptian religion, Hu refers specifically to the god Thoth in
his aspect as the "Tongue of Ptah and Ra."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HUBAL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HUBBARD, L. RON
Founder of Scientology. Perhaps his most useful and important teaching was that
we can extinguish things by focusing our attention upon them. That derives from
the psychological fact that when we make things enter ourselves they become
unreal, because things are our world, not the world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Odin's ravens ("Thought and Memory") which fly out over the world every day and
report to him the news every evening:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HUMAN SACRIFICE
Nothing horrifies civilized society more than the notion of human sacrifice.
Only the most ignorant and illiterate cults practice the secret ritual killing
of men or animals in the name of primitive gods. No initiate of any degree of
enlightenment could possible condone such a thing, for it violates the entire
concept of sacrifice, which can only be self-administered and voluntary.
Even self-sacrifice must serve a legitimate, clear purpose. It must somehow
better the world. In practice, sacrifice is more likely to involve the humble
dedication of one's life in some act of noble heroism. The Aztecs and their
bloody dawn rites, the children thrown to Moloch and the cannibals of the
Philippines are no more. We no longer, like the Druids, burn victims in wicker
baskets, nor like the Romans, condemn criminals to the gladiatorial arena. Gone
are the medieval witch burnings and dunking stools. We congratulate ourselves
that we have sublimated our violence with football, but the 20th Century has
known both genocide and political terrorism.
Meanwhile, you and I believe sanctimoniously that our collective bloodlust and
sadism have been set aside. We think our shadow is no longer there. But there
are still the gas chamber and the electric chair -- there is even, for that
matter, the constant toll of automobile and airplane. We need look only to the
millions of lives sacrificed daily to slave labor, to unjust penal institutions,
to miserable, cruel communities and wretched families from which they can never
escape. We need only think of how we persecute whole segments of our society so
devilishly that we drive them to suicide or drug addiction. We allow the medical
machine to decide who is to live and who is to die. And aren't we still prepared
to send adolescent boys to war, if it comes to that? Don't we continue to poison
one another with lethal pesticides and radioactivity? Don't we eagerly turn to
television's murders for entertainment, night after grisly night?
87
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYLISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYLOZOISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYPARXIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYPATIA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYPERSPACE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYPERSTEREOPSIS
88
------------------------------------------------------------------------
HYPOSTASIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
I
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IALDABOATH
(Or YALDABAOTH; sometimes SAMAEL.) The Gnostic's Creator demiurge (name means
"born of chaos" < yalda, "child" + bohu, "void"). He is little more than a
demon, for the world is a creation of evil untouched by the true God, who dwells
far away -- who, then, Jahweh is supposed to be is another question altogether,
outside of context.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IAMBLICHUS
Neoplatonic magus (250-325) of whom Julian the Apostate said, "He is posterior
to Plato only in time, not in genius." Author of On the Mysteries of the
Egyptians, Chaldeans and Assyrians, which is the foundation of Cabalism. It was
Iamblichus, also, who popularized Proclus. In his practice of sacred magic he
advocated that the soul could be divinized through mantrams and invocations.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IBEUM
One of many vaults in Egypt, containing the mummies of inummerable ibises, birds
sacred to Thoth. The largest are found in the cemetery of Hermopolis, Tuna el-
Gebel, and the Aesculapium of Imhotep at Sakkara.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
I CHING
The 64 hexagrams can be seen as 32 pairs of opposites and related to the 32 Atus
of the Book of Thoth. McKenna believes the I Ching is but a fragment of a much
larger device for prognostication, and bases his fractals of Timescape Zero upon
its regular sequences. A simple way of casting the I Ching is to throw a single
die six times. An even number indicates Yin, an odd number Yang. A 12-sided die
is best, so that you may determine "movables".
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IDIOTHEOSIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
89
IDOLON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Latin for explaining the unknown through the even more unknown. Sometimes
necessary when putting arcane idolons together.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IHS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ILIASTER
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ILLUSION
We know that the Hindus and Buddhists teach that the entire world is Maya, or
"illusion". Gurdjieff understood that there is only one thing repeated endlessly
to give the illusion of variation (see REALITY). We know, from modern physics,
that the atom is composed of infinitely smaller and smaller impermanent points
of potential energy. We are aware that all things are in flux and that the
distinction between world and self is imaginary. Given these and an endless
array of further facts, and seeing that the alteration of reality is, in fine,
the magician's job, it is obvious that the magician must be a "master of
illusion". The conjuror, buffoon or practitioner of legerdemain merely carries
the "Great Work" of the magus to an absurd degree and in demotic burlesque or
genuine mockery, he attempts to "expose" everything as a fraud and to reveal
that nothing is sacred, after all.
Thus the stage magician serves a useful purpose by reminding the serious
magician to avoid pomposity. The purpose of the conjuror and the sorceror are
equally to deceive -- the one innocently, as a pastime, the other not so
innocently, as an effort to wield power. But the goal of High Magick is exactly
the reverse -- its aim is to undeceive us about ourselves and the world we
inhabit.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IMAGINATION
90
One of the two human magickal powers (the other is Will). Actually the two
powers are but aspects of a secret third intelligence that goes unnamed. It is
through the imagination, for instance, that healing takes place. A persistent
focusing of the attention on the disease or affliction will eventually yield its
dynamics and plan of action to the imagination, whereupon it then becomes
possible to superimpose one's own healing pattern (also created by the
imagination) over the modus operandi of the disease, forcing it to conform to
one's own preference. Rather than simply "willing" something to happen, if you
can imagine how the happening can occur, you can painstakingly go over each step
in your mind until the event takes place.
Wade Baskin suggests that magic possesses but one dogma, which is that the
visible is the manifestation of the invisible. Since the part contains the all,
any part can control any other part. What you can imagine in sufficient detail
you can and will produce. Failure to manifest is simply the failure to follow
through in every detail and to give up too soon.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IMHOTEP
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IMMACULATE CONCEPTION
Refers not to a "virgin woman," but to the descent from the Perfect Void.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IMMORTALITY
The fourth and shallowest of ego desires. The difference between the initiate
and the ordinary person is that the initiate knows that he, along with
everything in the universe, is already immortal. Ordinary people see the truth
in such ideas but choose to live as if the illusion of commonplace, middle-class
job and family are more "practical" or "real" than metaphysical truth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
This is the state of the mind induced by shock, fear, psychedelic drugs, sensory
deprivation, etc. R. A. Wilson's term: "To change ourselves we need to learn how
to recreate imprint vulnerability." This enables us to create new reality
tunnels for ourselves (the right sort of ritual can also do this). IVs should be
introduced by a qualified shaman into the body, mind and emotional
"bloodstream."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
INFLATION
91
Psychic inflation is much worse than economic inflation. It refers to believing
that an idealized image is actually one's real self. Sometimes this can be an
archetypal image. Jung describes it as a morbid condition in which the ego
becomes exaggerated and, together with the unconscious, invades the self. A real
prophet, says Jung, does not identify with god, but says, "a spirit has spoken
to me." By keeping the spirit outside we can try to measure up to it. But in
inflation, the ego projects its own hatreds, flaws, wekanesses, evils and
ugliness onto others (while simultaneously denying their presence in itself) and
it grows increasingly unconcerned with the world's reaction. Whereas in the
Middle Ages people developed religious inflation (thought they were God), in
modern society the affliction is more likely to be political and rationalistic
and, in the name of reason, we like to deny the reality of the unconscious
altogether. Psychically inflated ego is also pernicious because it generates
further ego inflation in others.
An inflated person is a neurotic with whom nobody can deal because no one ever
knows which is the real person. Inflation can only be overcome by a balance of
patience and humility, and self-analysis of the ego at all times.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
INITIATE
One who has been "initiated" into the mysteries, an official Epopt, a magus. For
such a one, initiation is an ongoing process which is never completed. It has
been said, "An initiate is not one who knows everything, but one who knows that
he has everything to know."
Initiates know the meaning of the terms "Black," "White" and "Yellow" M/magic(k)
but realize that, in fact, all M/magic(k) is one. No magus ever ceases to be an
Initiate, no matter how far into the wildernesses of technocratic society life
may lure him.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
I.N.R.I.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
INVISIBILITY
Legend recounts many magical devices for conferring invisibility: Tarnkappe, the
Norse cloak of invisibility; the rings of Fulla and Luned; the tartan of King
Arthur, etc. All are attempts to make the work of magic easier. Magic, however,
contrary to childish belief, is never easy.
The ability to vanish can be developed in stages. Fisrt one learns how to pass
unnoticed through a crowd -- protective mimicry, camoflauge, keeping to the
movements of the throng, etc. Then one learns how to pass quickly before the
watchful eyes of sentinels and those whose business it is to examine everyone
closely. The latter "invisibility" is considerably more difficult to acquire,
but not impossible. Finally, one learns the art of cloud and shadow generation.
92
There is a technique for cupping darkness out of the air with one's bare hands.
(See Invisbility by Steve Richards, Aquarian Press, 1982.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
INVOLUTION
------------------------------------------------------------------------
IPSE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ISA/ISSA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ISEUM
A museum or temple storehouse containing art and material pertaining and sacred
to Isis.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ISHTAR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ISIS
The ("Thousand-Named") Egyptian Goddess, whose aspects are also the cow-headed
Hathor and the hippopotamus goddess, Taurt (the first deity of magic). Mother
and wife of Osiris. She was originally a mortal sorceress who desired to become
a goddess. From some of Ra's spittle she fashioned a viper of clay, which she
then brought to life and caused to bite and poison him. She released its
antidote to him only when he agreed to tell her his secret name(s). The power
thereof was so great that it ignited her deification. Ra has at least three
names: Khepera, Ra and Atum ("Morning, Noon and Sunset"). At night he is Osiris
and his eye is Thoth, the moon (as his eye by day is the Sun). Unfortunately,
everyone already knows those names. Ra's secret name was heard only by Isis
herself, and she has never deigned to share with anyone else. It is for this
reason that she is identified as the Goddess of Mystery itself.
The understanding of these names, indeed, is the key to all Egyptian wisdom, for
sooner or later, all the Gods run into and become one another. As we have begun
to suspect, the secret of magic is the knowledge that everything is everything
else. Isis is the Goddess of Ultimate Mystery itself and the Mother of all
93
M/magic(k). She is the great veil over the night that "none may remove." But in
simple, she represents the manifest world, as Nephthys is the unmanifest.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ITZLI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
J
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The white and black pillars of the High Priestess (entrance to the Temple of
Solomon: I Kings, 7.21). Strength and Beauty. Jachin = establishing principle,
right, active, male; Boaz = left, passive, female (and according to Case,
Strength). Jachin or yod, the phallus, requires beth, the house to contain it.
Jachin (He will establish) stands for Man. Boaz (In strength) stands for God.
The pillars represent the difficulty in distinguishing Self from Other, which is
the source of all opposites and dichotomies. When viewing the temple from
outside, Boaz is on one's left and Jachin on the right. From within, looking
out, Boaz is on ones right. When there is a middle pillar, it generally stands,
rather vagely, for wisdom.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JEBUS
An enemy stronghold stubbornly held against the Israelites, hence any place
overrun by barbarians, pets, or vermin (Jebusites).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JIHAD
Usually translated as Holy War, more nearly means struggle. Al Quran decrees no
one should fight unless attacked, but fundamentalists overlook such injunctions
in their rabid zeal to bring the world into the submission of Dar-es-Salaam
(House of Peace).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The mystical son of Zacharias, born at the summer solstice and complement of
Christ whose opposite birth was the winter solstice. In the deepest sense, John
the Baptist was both the real and symbolic Christ, dwelling in the wilderness,
wearing camel skins and eating locusts and wild honey. It was he who preached,
"Repent ye: for the kingdom of heaven is at hand!" It was he who said, long
before Christ, "He that hath two coats, let him impart to him that hath none;
and he that hath meat, let him do likewise." It was he who said, "Do violence to
no man!" It was he who denied the Pharisees his baptism, "O generation of
vipers, who hath warned you to flee from the wrath to come?"
But then we encounter the inevitable Xtian interpolation, added into the Bible a
century later: "I indeed baptise you with water unto repentance; but he that
94
cometh after me is mightier than I, whose shoes I am not worthy to bear. He
shall baptize you with the Holy Ghost, and with fire!" (Note the reference to
the usual magical elements - Fire, Spirit, etc. - John, born under the sign of
the Crab, being the baptiser by Water.)
John met his fate supposedly because he spurned the advances of Salome and her
mother. Eventually they succeeded in convincing Herod to have him beheaded
(i.e., removed the spirit from the body). The Jesus who came after was
considered by some to be the reincarnation of John (or the resurrected spirit
thereof).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JUDGMENT
The 20th and penultimate Arcanum, lettered Shin (the fiery character that means
serpents fang). The true judgment and resurrection constitute the awakening from
the death of ordinary materialistic preoccupation to the light and life of the
spirit. Called by Crowley The Aeon. In our minds, beyond everyday reality,
theres one Great Day that contains past, future and the alternate possibilities
all at the same time. It is into this Great Day or Last Day that we enter most
completely only when we die. According to Crowley, this Atu is the final leg of
the mystic path chosen by the initiate.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JU-JU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Ruled Rome from 360 to 363 C.E. Concerned that Rome had fallen to the Xtians,
this brilliant and humane emperor valiantly tried to reinstate the old religions
during his brief rulership. the novel Julian by Gore Vidal is a poignant and
trustworthy account of his heroic mission.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JUMPING JESUS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JUNG'S NIGHTMARE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JUPITER
Represents the point at which a tendency to blur the distinctions between the
other planets takes place. Jupiter is the tendency to be all-encompassing and to
produce, like the peacock's tail, the full panoply of influences all at once, as
contrasted to the Sun which is the epitome of specialized individualization.
Thus, Jupiter is the planet of expansion and fortune and indicates the manner of
our growth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
JUSTICE
The 11th or 8th Arcanum, lettered lamedh. This pathway concerns itself with
redressing the build-up of Karma. Crowley calls it Adjustment and assigns it the
number 8, not only to displace Strength to the number eleven spot, but to
emphasize that balance cannot end on an uneven number. It is useful to observe
several things depicted by the figure of Justice. First of all, she is seated,
which is an indication, from the beginning, that the process of correction is
passive, not aggressive. Secondly, she bears the scales of justice in one hand,
but a sword in the other. That means that there are times when the proper
response is not justice or balance, but violence. Finally, the pillars on either
side are a continuation of those first encountered in the High Priestess.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
K
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KACHINAS
Semi-divine spirits in the Hopi religion. They are embodied in sacred dolls.
Participants in donning the masks and enacting the roles actually become the
kachinas themselves.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KAHUNA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KALA
In Hinduism, this is the word for Time as the source of all things. In Tantric
philosophy, kalas are out-flowings from time (scents, flowers, exudations,
emanations, phenomena), particularly referring to the human "kalas" or numerous
body fluids and products: blood, semen, milk, sweat, earwax, etc. of which the
Tantrists number over thirty (occidental medicine acknowledges no more than 23-
96
24). Apparently, many extra Tantric kalas are produced by prolonged and obscure
sexual rituals. One of these is called the sadhakya kala and is the most secret
of all -- "the essence where time stands still; where time is not," says Grant.
There is also bindhu, a fluid that bisexualizes men and women, obtainable only
through Tantric practice; and there is melatonin produced by the pineal gland
from serotonin found in the hypothalamus, the blood, dates, bananas, plums and
ficus religiosus, or the fig of the Bo-tree of Buddha. Grant used the word in
the same sense as above, but also in his own special sense as a synonym for the
Tunnels of Set, which he sees as types of "secretions". (See TUNNELS OF SET.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KALI YUGA
1/1000 of Kalpa. This age in which we are living is the Kali Yuga, or "Dark
Age," and lasts 432,000 years, having begun in 3102 B.C. It is well known,
however, that the ancient Indic method of counting years was highly arbitrary
from our point of view. Obviously, we have come down to the final days of the
Kali Yuga -- 3102 B.C. is the mirror of 2013 A.D., the Mayan end of time.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KALKI
The final avatar of Vishnu (see VISHNU AVATARS) who arrives on a white horse to
herald the end of the world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KALPA
A day of Brahma. 4,320,000,000 years long, divided unequally into 4 ages. Satya
Yuga was the first age (Golden Age).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KAMA LOKA
The receiving station of the astral plane; the so-called "desire-world" where
the dead first arrive. It is this place that the NDE people refer to as "the
other side." It takes on the illusory character of anything the newly arrived
spirit most desires. Muslims immediately believe they have entered Paradise,
Xtians invariable encounter Jesus here. After a very short time, these errors of
perception are corrected.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KAMEA
Magic square in which each column and rank add up to the same totals. There are
kameas for each of the seven classical planets, as follows (in which I have
herewith corrected the error for the Venus Kamea in regardie's Complete Golden
Dawn System of Magic, 1985, Falcon Press):
Kameas
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KAPPA
Ancient mountain or phallic gods of Japan. Besides the Kappa, however, there
were the gods Ohonamochi and Sukunabikona, who originated the forms of religion.
97
And there was the founder of the Japanese Empire, Jimmu Tenno, who first taught
magical formulae.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KAREZZA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KETHER
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Yoga: self-control
Tarot: archetypes
Astrology: time patterns
Ritual: participation in eternal reality orders
Scrying: evocation of visions
Dreams: spontaneous visions
I Ching: randomness superimposed on frozen reality
Psychedelics: differences of perspective and insight, plus avenues of
perichoresis
Death or Thanatomimesis: means of taking the self apart and putting it back
together again in a new way.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KHABS AM PEKHT
Depending upon the Egyptian translation you favor, it can mean either "Cultivate
Inner Strength" or "Light in Extension." the phrase is a teaching imperative. As
the light descends it spreads out, as in a pyramid, therefore to teach is to
extend illumination on any given level. As the base extends, so the apex
necessarily rises. Compare to the corruption, "Konx Om Pax." Khabs is the star
in Khu, or magical power.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The Rebirth Deity, Ra as the "dung beetle," which is a pun in the Egyptian
language for "becoming." He may or may not have wings. This is Ra's "becoming"
form as he crawls through the underground tunnel of Tuat, whence he is about to
escape and re-assume his body of light so that he can rise up again to Nut, the
sky. The scarabaeus, like everything else, is only a momentary point of
transition. We the earthbound are all "midnight suns," imprisoned in Kheperah.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KIA
98
"The eye of central mystical vision." (The "atmospheric eye.") (See ZOS.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KISMET
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KIU-TI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KNOWLEDGE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KOAN
A paradoxical Zen riddle designed to occupy the reason, so that the unconscious
mind can be freed to look for Mu and experience enlightenment (see MU). The
person whose ego is not ready to stand aside will always attempt to give an
answer to a koan.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KONX-OM-PAX
Ancient Greek power words that some say were shouted during the Eleusinian
Mysteries, during the ecstasy of initiation (i.e., "the descent of the light").
The words are, however, not Greek, but a corruption of Khabs Am Pekht, taken
from the Egyptian Isis cult.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KOOT HOOMI
One of the Chohan entities, initiates or "secret chiefs" contacted by HPB and
Alice Bailey. Koot Hoomi is responsible for the creation of Theosophy.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KORAX
99
Nigredo (or "darkening") is a crow or raven (i.e., the Devil) when it enters the
darkness, but then is reborn in the morning light (Albedo, transformed as a
heron.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KUNDALINI
Sex power (Hindu serpent). The goddess in the form of a fire-serpent, who lies
sleeping at the base of the spine. It is the supreme power of magic in man.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
KURGASIAX
The 21st kala is the dark equivalent of the Wheel of Fortune, based not on Fate
or Chance, but upon curse and malevolence. The accompanying depiction of the
card isn't quite perfect. Anubis should be more gleeful and the woman more
obviously a corpse. The wheel itself should be slightly smaller, so that the
wicked witch can hold it in her hand, since she is a guise of Heimarmene and in
charege of it. Her crown should more obscurely resemble the crown of Maat.
Nightmares (she is the deliverer thereof) ought to be visible in the smoke
shapes rising up out of the flames of burning civilization.
The wheel is the mark of the beast or Set, which, in turning, activates the
powers of the sphinx. The cross is the place of crossing over (Daath), gateway
to the Abyss. The tails are the three backward entries connecting to Daath in
the sephiroth of Pluto, Jupiter and Venus (Kether, Chesed and Netzach).
Kurgasiax, more than any other of the dungeons, illlustrates how the dark and
light sides are inextricably linked. This is the same wheel as the Wheel of
Fortune, except that it is viewed here as descending. The Wheel of Kurgasiax
moves from high to low, day to night, life to death, whereas the the Wheel of
Fortune is rising out ot the negative into the positive. It's called "The
Roasting Spit" because it turns to face the the flames of hell after every
revolution. (See WHEEL.)
Nevertheless, the magical siddha is "ascendancy", since what sinks most deeply
is a reflection of the highest. So the Ray of the Scepter is the weapon of
choice in the magickal working. Grant says Crowley regarded this as the formula
of Gomorrah (number 315). In esoteric tradition Sodom is the masculine mode and
Gomorrah the feminine.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
L
------------------------------------------------------------------------
L-5 SOCIETY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LAFCURSIAX
The 22nd kala is the scales of justice tossed aside and mis-weighted.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
100
An Enochian evocation (Crowley?). It has not been translated
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LANGUAGE
Maurice Nicoll in Living Time says: "We communicate badly, partly because we
never notice how we are doing it, and partly because it is an extremely
difficult matter to communicate anything save the simplest observations, without
the danger of our signals being misinterpreted. Also, as often as not, we do not
exactly know what it is we are trying to communicate. Finally, nearly everything
of importance cannot be expressed."
Since this is so, doesn't it stand to reason that we should devote a good deal
more time to language than we do? And since the more tongues we learn the better
we understand our own, shouldn't learning other languages have a high priority?
Part of the teaching we should impart to our chelas is never to stop struggling
with language, recognizing that it must always be welcomed as a challenge. In
every M/magic(k)al community - whether in a sophisticated modern city or in the
midst of a Stone Age tribe, the magician is always the one who knows the longest
words and can use them. What is a "spell", after all? What is gematria, but an
attempt to dissect words and rebuild them? A "grimoire" was originally a
"grammar." "Vedanta" is actually the "grammar" of the Sanskrit Vedas! As we
begin to understand more about the Past and the necessity to turn back to it, we
see that language looms larger and larger in human consciousness. The ancients
understood what we have forgotten - birds fly and lions predate, but language is
what man does. It is language that lies behind everything we make, which is why
the word "poet" derives from a Greek word meaning "one who makes," the most
important thing being, for the Greeks, to make words and which is why in the
bible it is said, "In the beginning was the word." Words, like all things that
are made, come out of the Void, magically. And words come before the thing! A
spider may weave a web but it is always the same web built on the same blueprint
resident in her instincts, no different from the eggs she lays instinctively.
Compare that to the variety of human works! By the same token, the man who has
no language is not just a spider that can't weave webs. He is a frog that can't
leap, a seal that can't swim, a deer that can't run.
The reason Latin, Greek and Sanskrit are hard to learn is that they are ancient
tongues and our linguistically-diminished consciousness is no longer able to
deal with convolutions of thought and esoteric syntax. Nevertheless, it's still
true that if you really want to understand Plato or the author of Genesis you
must learn Ancient Greek and Hebrew. There was a time when English also used
conjugations and declensions as highly structured as Latin. Today we can barely
translate Shakespeare. The progress of language always mirrors the deterioration
of the human spirit and moves downward from difficult to easy. And in return, as
language decays it brings civilization down with it. Already it's virtually
impossible for all but a handful of scholars in the world even to attempt to
master anything bizarre, like Babylonian cuneiform or Mayan hieroglyphs -
although a century ago, when all well-educated people knew Latin and Greek, such
studies, had the material been available, would have been relatively common. If
the day ever comes that we should actually encounter an extraterrestrial
civilization, we will discover to our dismay that our technology is useless.
Because we have lost our sense of language, to attempt to learn what they are
saying may be completely beyond our capacity. We've traded communication for the
ease of machines.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LANOO
A Disciple.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
101
LAPIS EXILIX
Magical, pre-Xtian stone, later identified with the Grail and with the Lapis
Philosophorum.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LARES
Ancient Roman (prob. originally Etruscan) household Gods. Every home has its own
individual God whose propitiation and honor guarantees happiness and security.
The Lares extended their influence to farms, countrysides and crossroads. The
common assumption is that they wre the ghosts of dead ancestors - but, even a
brand new hearth, without ancestors, also had its Lar.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LARVAE
Involutional astral entities, of two types. The first are those created by
wicked imagination. They can infect and enter human beings as vampires or
leeches. The way to deal with such an invader is to reject it utterly and to
substitute a better image. When encountered on the physical plane, a larva was,
in ages past, destroyed with a magical sword. Today it would be more effective
to use a laser beam. The second type of larvae are the shades of those who have
lived on earth but who have, according to HPB, "refused all spiritual light,
remained and died deeply immersed in the mire of matter, and from whose sinful
souls the immortal spirit has gradually separated."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LEFT-HANDED TANTRA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LEGERDEMAIN
102
The all too common notion that "magic" is a synonym for "easy" is deplorable.
People seem to be impressed more by speed of accomplishment and minimization of
human labor than by the things themselves. Rather than being awestruck by the
beauty of the palace, we are impressed instead by the djinni's instantaneous
teleportation of it. Magic in the 20th Century has become a minor attribute of
technology. Jet flight, television and micro-wave cooking at the touch of a
button - these are magic for the multitudes, the limits of hoi polloi
imagination. Yet there is more wonder in a horse than in an automobile. A good
meal that takes hours to prepare is a lot more "magical" than a fast-food sushi-
burger.
A student of the Academy of M/magic(k)al Arts recently asked, "How can you tell
when what appears to be magic is really a trick?" I suppose most people will
always confuse prestidigitation with thaumaturgy. Although stage magic never has
any but a trivial, useless result, "real magic" is a significant act that alters
reality for the better. Never forget that we dwell in a world of illusion - what
the East calls maya - indeed the roots of magic and maya (mag-, may-) are the
same. Reality is nothing more than a consensus, an agreement of the crowd, that
thus and thus is so. If your eyes were closed you'd be unable to tell the
difference between a peacock feather tickling your nose and a fly lighting upon
it. The true magus doesn't do "tricks" because the world itself is already a
piece of legerdemain. Instead, he is bent on embuing the world with a new
meaning, with transforming the basic foundation of the hell that we inhabit.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LEGBHA
African (Dahomey, Yoruba.). When the Sun-God Damballah touched the penises of
Leghba's four sons,they ejaculated the logoi spermatikoi into the heavens,
whence the philosophers received reason and wisdom.
Papa Legbha is the god of the knotted stick (phallus), the strongest God of the
Voodoo religion. He is the guardian of the crossroads and opener of the way for
the other gods to follow, and the last son of the Creator God and equated in the
New World with the Devil. He appears as a ragged old man with a crutch, pack on
back and pipe in mouth. Leghba desires the human race in a lustful way and every
voodoo magician, at some point, experiences a desire for sexual union with
Leghba, whereupon, if he is accepted, the supplicant enters an initiation into
the deepest mysteries of all.
(Note: Readers who wish to know more about Voodoo, should read Bertiaux's
"Voodoo-Gnostic Workbook" and those who are familiar with computer games, will
find Gabriel Knight - Sins of the Fathers (which is set in New Orleans) very
instructive.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LEO
(Jul 23-Agust 22). The fire of the fixed signs. Sign of courage and strength.
The Velle of the Tetramorph. The Lion is characterized by the solar heart of
born leadership and has the strongest, most dramatic, sensitive and
temperamental personality of the zodiac.
Some typicl Leos are: Napoleon, Simon Bolivar, Amelia Earhart, Bella Abzug,
Maxfield Parrish, G.B. Shaw, Carl Jung, Mick Jagger, Aldous Huxley, Alexandre
Dumas, Charlotte Corday, Mussolini, Emperor Claudius, Henry Ford, Melville,
Scopes, Shelley, Neil Armstrong, Tennyson, Andy Warhol, Mata Hari, Sylvia
Sidney, Madame Blavatsky, Diamond Jim Brady, Alfred Hitchcock, Fidel Castro,
Annie Oakley, Mae West, Mme. du Barry, Melvin Belli.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LEYS
103
Ancient British megaliths (see DOLMEN) were noted by archaeologist Alfred Wakins
to indicate lines of psychic power in the earth. Ufologists also believe ley-
lines are guides for ultramundane visitants who have been using them throughout
history. The word is a variant of lea, or "meadow" and surviv in in British
place-names, such as Bradleigh and Waterloo, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LHA
Tibetan gods. Also, a term for the highest spirits. Saints and yogins are
sometimes respectfully addressed as "lhas". (See LOA).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LIBRA
(Sept. 23- Oct.22). Equilibrium in both psychic and material works. The sign of
the Sun's decline, hence Librans tend to passivity of some type, preferring to
act behind the scenes and avoiding the limelight except when it becomes
necessary to act as society's balance or opposition. Librans are either
remarkably accommodating and cooperative or they are deliberately contradictory,
negativistic and anti-social. In pre-writing times, during the oral tradition,
Virgo and Scorpio appear to have been one sign (which can be observed by the
similarity of their symbols, Virgo being closed, Scorpio being open. Libra is
then the balance between the two extremes.
Famous Librans: Pavlov, Gandhi, Le Corbusier, Himmler, Saint-Saëns, Annie
Besant, Verdi, Virgil, Nietzsche, Oscar Wilde, Cervantes, Joan Fontaine, Carrol
Lombard, Aleister Crowley, Timothy Leary.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LIGHTNING
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LILITH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
104
LIMBO
The Afterworld ("beyond the border") of the Non-Xtians. Not defined by the
Galileans except to say that these souls have been lost from Xtianity.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LOA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LOGOPLASM
An unnatural neologism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LOGOS
In the original Greek sense, it doesn't just refer to any spoken or written
word, but also to innate meaning or the thing itself that is to be expressed,
whether an idea or a rationale or a philosophical principle. Hence it is the
"Creative Word" or even the manifested deity, deva or ourgos who utters it and
creates the world out of no-thing. When it is used literally as "word" it has
various interpretations, such as "Consciousness" or "Language". Gnostically,
certain "words" or names are necessary to allow the soul to get past the
archons.
In traditional Xtianity, Logos is the actual and exact word of God incarnate;
Controlling principle of the Universe (Jesus as the second person in the
Trinity); Divine Creative Word. To understand what "Logos" means in a non-Xtian
context, it is necessary to understand the Greek philosophical concept of
language and the Greek recognition of the mythopoetic power of words. This
dynamic was uprooted from its normal place in the language, redefined as a Xtian
principle and thereby stripped of all past associations.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LONGEVITY
Leary, R.A. Wilson and P.K. Dick must all have picked up the same vibration,
being convinced that old age and mortality should no longer be necessary in the
21st Century. The telomeres (cellular time-clocks) can be manipulated. The
resultant immortals will not be eternally youthful eloi, but will resemble
ordinary middle-aged folks. Jonathan Swift in his A Voyage to Struldbrugg points
out that immortals tend to weary of life after a hundred years or so and to
forget what they have learned. If birth is not controlled in a world of
immortals, the extras will have to deported into outer space... to go hence,
whither? Of course, the cost of building enormous spaceships to accommodate
billions of passengers may exceed our monetary limits, not to mention the
natural resources available within the solar system.
105
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LOROO
A Forgotten One who dwells in the interstellar spaces. Best not remembered.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LOTUS
The lotus is the symbol of conscious immortality. It is also the symbol of the
world of manifestation. As the seeds contain the plant in miniature, it is the
microcosm in the macrocosm, past present and future. Brahma was born from the
lotus, and the Buddha called therefrom. In Egypt, Horus was born of the lotus,
and it was equated with the Sun. Rooted in the mud, it rises through the water
and opens in the air to receive the fire of the sun. Thus it encompasses all
elements.
(See OM MANI PADME HUM).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LOVERS, THE
The 6th Arcanum, lettered Zain ("a sword"). Ouspensky calls this frankly
"Temptation". A choice between "lovers" is necessary - i.e. a choice between the
World of the Mind and the Temple of Flesh. Gemini is the astrological
attribution. Spirtitual growth as opposed to the "gross procreation" of the
Devil.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
LUNATIC
(Accent second syllable). Strongly affected by the Moon. Since the Moon is the
unconscious mind, those laboring under this planet bring forth things that are
ordinarily repressed. Hence the notion of the werewolf, Dr. Jekyll & Mr. Hyde,
etc. Also, over-exposure to a study of the lunar side of things can result in a
very peculiar and eccentric personality. The Moon is also the feminine cycle of
the menses, and so has to do with the feminine mystique and mystery.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
M
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAA KHERU
(Egyptian, "See the Fallen One!") When uttered aloud, allows the soul to proceed
to the underworld and there win the power of the gods. Wade Baskin defines it
(sp. Ma'kheru) as an Egyptian sorcerer and literally means "Magic Word" or
"Voice of Truth" (Ma'at). In the sense of a vow only the actual hieroglyphs can
tell us the correct translation:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MA'AT
106
The divine feather and balance, as well as the Goddess of Truth and Justice. In
the judgment of the dead, Ma'at weighs the feather in the balance against the
soul. The Aeon of Ma'at is to follow the present Aeon of Horus, and was
inaugurated in 1948. In vulture symbolism compare Hebrew Meth, "death."
All that, however, merely scratches the surface of the Egyptian understanding of
Ma'at. It is the basic principle of Kamite tradition and the link to the Gods.
Here is where China and Egypt share in making ritual so important, which is how
the Egyptians knew Ma'at. In "Her Bak" we learn that Ma'at is the key to the
reason for man's life and the key to the mystery of Egypt itself. It is the
mediation between man and the gods and serves, moreover, as a bridge between all
disparities. When we ignore tradition, we soon drift into error. One of man's
more noticeable failings is a lack of perseverance, but whenever we emphasize
anything, we call up the opposite of emphasis, i.e. spontaneity and change:
Priest vs. Shaman. Evil, then, is ignorance caused by the absence of Ma'at.
Gnosis - the knowing of the divine names - brings us back. Ma'at is the
necessary balancing of the paradoxes of wisdom and that is why it is
characterized by a feather, so the necessary balance can be extremely subtle.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC
From Latin magi, pl. (Greek magoi, pl. of magos, a Magian, one of the Median
tribe; also an enchanter, properly a wise-man who interpreted dreams; Old
Persian mugh, one of the Magi, a fire-worshipper; Sanskrit maga "a priest of the
sun"; maybe related to maha, "great" and maya, illusion; perhaps, ultimately,
even the Maya of Central America. Compare Hebrew makeshef, "magician"). Magic is
actually short for "Magic Art". The connection between magus and magnus "great"
also appears in Hebrew. As in Latin the word for "great", produces "master or
teacher" (magister) , so Hebrew rab produces "rabbi". However the confusion in
Hebrew does not arise because the word for "magic" (qeshem) is not related to
rab".
The word in this form is found with precisely the same meaning (or mystery) in
most European tongues and even in Japanese majutsu, (which they no doubt
borrowed from the Portuguese). Elsewhere, however, we find different senses
altogether, such as the old Teutonic Helliruna (lit. "Hell's secret") which is
surely a folk etymology of the Arabic word for "mandrake", albiruhan or
alyabruhin, the same word we find in Spanish as the word for "magician", el
brujo, because alongside that there is indeed the Old High German word for
"mandrake", Alruna. The only question we need ask is which form came first, but
we find the Arabic influence extending east as far as Mongolia, where, in
passing, we may note ilbi for "magic."
The otherness of ego enwraps each of us like a prison, but the magus takes all
of earth as his body. Magic itself is but a symbol of the greater Magic, which
is Unity. The Oneness frees us from the dungeon of darkness and the self and
resembles the teaching of Buddhism.
From yet another perspective, magic, mind and life are the same thing: living
cells are sometimes kept alive in labs. A specialized cell, so protected, fed
and allowed to reproduce, eventually turns into a basic and undifferentiated
cell. This indicates that life is not only exceedingly plastic but that it is
also purposive. If such adaptation were attributable to mindless mechanics, a
bone cell would go on reproducing a bone cell and a blood cell a blood cell
forever.
Since all things are connected, then experiential reality, which is Mind, can be
altered by the implementation of the Will and Visualization. There is no
"orthodox" doorway of the "Self" through the various universes, so the magician
must build his own bridge, without assistance, across the Abyss, from the
otherness of the separate ego to Cosmic Unity. Since the goal and purpose of
existence is knowledge, then the magus is obliged to seek experience on numerous
planes of being reached via perichoresis and also to effect material changes in
the earth's reality. Thinking isn't just the beginning of creation, it is
creation itself.
107
Marc Edmund Jones classifies magic into categories. Divination is the effort to
gain knowledge, particularly of the future (in order the better to assist the
"Divine" plan). The evocation or invocation of elementals or angelic powers,
functioning through the ethers, is another class of magic. Then there is
hypnotism, which works through "imitative" magic. Finally, there is tantrism, or
the development of supernatural siddhis.
Colin Wilson suggests that magic is simply the development of the Will and the
Imagination, Versluis that it is "not a means to an end, but a means to heighten
means." Clearly, the object of magic is the raising of consciousness. The magus
is empowered to effect events only to the extent that he is able to recognize
that inside and outside are one. To transform the world is to transform oneself
and vice-versa. Traditional rituals, the using of symbols and the altering of
consciousness through herbs, smells, sounds, repetitions and meditation are all
inward-directed processes designed to educate, focus and strengthen the
faculties of Imaging and Willing. Alchemy is the same endeavor directed
outwardly. We fail to control the transformation of our selves to the degree
that we isolate ourselves from the world, just as we lose our ability to change
the world at the exact moment that we begin to lose touch with ourselves.
However, although those who don't know what they are doing are obliged to
perform magic strictly through the observation of rituals, those who understand
its real nature and purpose can move directly to its center and act from there,
without incantations and conjurations.
Here are some definitions of M/magic(k) by various authorities on the subject:
ANONYMOUS: "Magus Nascitur Non Fit."
ALICE BAILEY: "No man is a magician, or worker in white magic, until his third
eye is opened, or is in the process of opening." (That means 'transmission of
consciousness to the universal mind').
WADE BASKIN: "The art and science of magic is based on three basic principles.
1) one may communicate with other realms, or planes of existence, through the
medium of the Astral Light; 2) the power of the magician is unlimited; 3)
external characteristics (signatures) are signs through which everything
internal and invisible can be revealed."
MORRIS BERMAN: "Magic is not necessarily gnostic in nature, since it is not
particularly dualistic, and it never includes the notion of an outside savior or
redeemer, which Gnosticism (particularly in its early forms) sometimes does."
HELENA P. BLAVATSKY: "The art of divine Magic consists in the ability to
perceive the essence of things in the light of nature (astral light), and - by
using the soul-powers of the Spirit - to produce material things from the unseen
universe, and in such operations the Above and the Below must be brought
together and made to act harmoniously". (The Secret Doctrine).
"Magic is spiritual wisdom. Arcane knowledge misapplied is sorcery.
"Magic was considered a divine science which led to a participation in the
attributes of Divinity itself."
"Magic was the highest knowledge of natural philosophy... and the magician
differed from the witch in this, that, while the latter was an ignorant
instrument in the hands of demons, the former had become their master by the
powerful intermediation of science, which was only within reach of the few, and
which these beings were powerless to disobey."
BERNARD BROMAGE: "The word has, more often than not, been used, not for
illumination, not as a guide to ascertainable verity, but as a camouflage to
conceal a man's ignorance; and, worse, his calculated ineptitude and folly. The
word can be said to have ceased to be a word and to have become a byword: a
symbol surrounded by an evilly phosphorescent light, of man's infernal capacity
for avoiding the issues. . . Magic, tout court, is immensely concerned with the
'Extension of Consciousness'; the widening of frontiers; the increase and
development of every variety of sense perception. To be a magician one must
learn to investigate all phenomena with the eye of the scientist who scorns no
possible hypothesis nor neglects to take into the fullest consideration the
complete structure of our actual and potential being. . . it is not a solace for
the frustrated, but a reward for the pure of heart. Its final appeal is not to
curiosity or greed, but to reverence and acceptance."
108
PETER CARROLL: "The world is magical but designed to make us believe we are not
magi."
"All events are basically magical, arising spontaneously without prior cause.
Physical laws are only statistical approximations. Consciousness, magic and
chaos are the same thing. Consciousness also makes things happen without prior
cause."
ALEISTER CROWLEY: "All Art is Magick"
"The Goal of Magick is the knowledge and conversation of the Holy Guardian
Angel."
NEVILL DRURY: "Magic is the technique of harnessing the secret powers of Nature
and and seeking to influence events for one's own purpose. If the purpose is
beneficial it is known as white magic, but if it is intended to bring harm to
others, or to destroy property, it is regarded as black magic."
"High Magic is intended to bring about the spiritual transformation of the
person who practices it. This form of magic is designed to channel the
magician's consciousness towards the sacred light within, which is often
personified by the high gods of different cosmologies. The aim of high magic has
been described as communication with one's Holy Guardian Angel, or higher self.
It is also known as Theurgy."
"Whereas science deals with empirically observable causes and effects, occultism
deals pragmatically with methods of altering consciousness to produce certain
effects. One of these is the assimilation within the self of the characteristics
of a deity, another is the separation of consciousness from the physical body."
DION FORTUNE: "Magic is the art of changing consciousness at will."
KENNETH GRANT: "Magick is the apotheosis of the Irrational, the acme of the
absurd, and the reification of the impossible."
GURDJIEFF: ". . .I decided to call those undertakings which required intentional
action of higher centers - those centers which are properly the feeling and
thinking centers, capable of emotional sensing and of mentation respectively,
but which are ordinarily unformed through absorption of their rightful
impressions by the false emotional and intellectual centers of the psyche -
objective magic, having as its result the obtaining of real knowledge."
"I thus separated this objective magic from its ordinary counterpart, 'magic of
the psyche', in which purely fantastic results are obtained, and self-calming
and amusement are the only attainments. Under this category I placed my former
endeavors as a medium and psychic, as well as those results obtained by
theosophy, occultism and so forth, all of which up to then had quite fascinated
and attracted my attention."
WILLIAM JAMES: "We all have a lifelong habit of inferiority to our full self. .
."
MARC EDMUND JONES: "Occult, as distinct from secular, science; Occult as the
effort to compel the cooperation of others, as well as deity, nature, in
enterprises of self, illustrated by miracle or thaumaturgy, known as white when
ethical and black when amoral."
ELIPHAS LÉVI: "The Arcanum of the Magnum Opus is the mastery or government of
Ignis."; "Would you learn to reign over yourself and others? Learn how to will.
How can one learn to will? This is the first arcanum of magical initiation. . ."
MACGREGOR MATTHEWS: "To practice magic, both the imagination and the Will must
be called into action, they are co-equal in the work. . . The Will unaided can
send forth a current. . . yet its effect is vague and indefinite. . . the
Imagination unaided can create an image. . . yet it can do nothing of
importance, unless vitalized and directed by the Will."
JOHN MIDDLETON: "We may say that the realm of magic is that in which human
beings believe that they may directly affect nature and each other for good or
ill, by their own efforts (even when the precise mechanism may not be understood
by them) as distinct from appealing to divine powers by sacrifice or prayer
(i.e. religion)."
JOHN O'KEEFE: "Magic is the defense of the self against the malevolence of
society."
PARACELSUS: "The exercise of true magic does not require any ceremonies or
conjurations, or the making of circles and signs; it requires neither
benedictions nor maledictions in words, neither verbal blessings or curses."
109
JOHN COWPER POWYS: "Magic is simply the choice between emphasis and rejection."
DIANE DE PRIMA: "Look at the forces behind the things rather than just at the
object or event. If I have a working definition of magic it's that behind every
single thing in the world an infinite tunnel opens of reference, cross-
references, and forces, and how these things interlock in nets. What I basically
say is, yeah, learning to see force. . . learning to see the etheric and the
astral, etc. to the thinner and thinner layers of stuff. And learning to work
off those layers rather than . . . if you want to push that rock you don't
necessarily have to go out there and put your shoulder to it."
RIMBAUD: "The Poet transforms himself into a seer through a long, immense and
determined, rational disordering of all his sense. Every form of love, suffering
and madness he seeks within himself and exhausts in himself all poisons,
preserving but their quintessences. Ineffable torture where he will need all of
his faith and superhuman strength, making him among men, the great Sick Man, the
Thrice-Damned, the Arch-Criminal - and the supreme Savant! - for he arrives at
the Unknown! Since he has cultivated his soul, already richer than any other
man's, he thereby reaches the Unknown, and, even if, insane in the end, he
should lose every shred of understanding gained so laboriously, he will have had
his Visions! He may perish in his leap into those innumerable, unnameable
things, there will follow other terrible workers. They will begin at the
horizons where he fell."
MARTIN DEL RIO: "An art or skill which, by means of a non-supernatural force,
produces certain strange and unusual phenomena whose rationale eludes common
sense."
ROMULUS: "Magic is living poetry."
"Magic is the invocation and exploitation of synchronicity. All practices build
up a momentum of their own. What we desire eventually comes true, with
interest."
"Every magician's tricks are his own, to help him with own special problems, to
get himself over his own inner obstacles. Our Individual tasks are to learn and
overcome our own obstacles. That's why the study of great men and women is so
very instructional and worthwhile. Not because they teach us to be like them,
but because they show us how they became themselves! "
"Self-confident, integrated personalities already are fairly much in control of
their powers and are magical to some extent. When circumstances intrude, such as
sickness, enmity, financial loss, etc. and self-confidence wanes, the 'magical'
side begins to seem spurious. The more 'magical' we try to be, the more
charlatanry rises to the surface in us."
FRANCIS KING & STEPHEN SKINNER: "Four basic assumptions of magic: 1. That the
[physical] universe is only a part of total reality. 2. The human will-power is
a real force, capable of being trained and concentrated, and that the
disciplined will is capable of changing its environment and producing paranormal
events. 3. That this will-power must be directed by the imagination. 4. That the
universe is not a mixture of chance factors and influences, but an ordered
system of correspondences, and the understanding of the pattern of
correspondences enables the occultist to use them for his own purposes, good or
evil.
HUTTON WEBSTER (1948): "As regards purpose, Magic is divinatory, productive and
aversive. The magician discovers or foretells what is otherwise hidden in time
or space from human eyes; he influences and manipulates the objects and
phenomena of nature and all animate creatures so that they may satisfy actual or
human needs; and finally he combats, neutralizes and remedies the onslaught of
the evils, real or imaginary, afflicting mankind. The range of magic is thus
almost as wide as the life of man. All things under heaven, and even the
inhabitants of heaven become subject to its sway.
COLIN WILSON: "Human perception is 'intentional.'" (Consciousness is a muscle).
"The great personality-inhibitor is caution. . . even in a few people who seem
fairly well integrated. I can suddenly catch a glimpse of a more sophisticated,
confident personality that has never succeeded in emerging . . . Even
criminality is a form of caution, the desire for immediate and tangible returns,
based upon the feeling that the universe has no intention of giving you anything
you are not prepared to take by force. In fact, the study of murder leaves one
110
with an impression of weak and crippled personalities who left half their
potentialities to stagnate."
"Outside our everyday personality there is a wider self that possesses greater
powers than the everyday self. . . When the will is hindered by too much self-
consciousness it often produces the opposite effect from the one intended. (Poe
called it "the imp of the perverse"). The wider self would be happy to oblige,
but the contracted ego is somehow opposing itself, like someone trying to open a
door by pushing it instead of pulling it. So it does the next best thing."
(Psychokinesis).
"Modern civilization induces an attitude of passivity. When a Stone Age hunter
set out to trap wild animals, he was aware of his will as a living force. When
the prehistoric farmer scored the surface of the earth with a crude plough, he
knew that his family's survival through the winter depended on his effort, and
his will responded to the challenge. When a modern city dweller walks down a
crowded thoroughfare, he feels no sense of challenge or involvement. This city
was built by other people, all these shops and offices are owned by other
people. He can get through an ordinary day's work in a state approximating
sleep. Most of his routine tasks are carried out by the 'robot'. There is
neither the need or the opportunity to use the will."
ZORN ZUCKERMAN: "The 20th Century has been so much a time of everything 'losing
its magic, that the only thing left is magic itself."
CONCLUSION:
Is magic simply the search for "ultimate knowledge" without the burden of
"worship"? Not exactly. The Golden Dawn used to say, "The aim of religion, the
method of science," which was as ambitious as it was inaccurate. The
"Transcendental" without religion, as opposed to mere "Revelation" without
religion, would be closer to the mark than soulless "Ultimate Knowledge." The
latter is a logical, scientific goal, not a magical one. The Scientist is
obliged to go wherever his will-o'-the-wisp may lead him, as Mary Shelley
pointed out, stopping not even at Frankenstein's monster nor the Hydrogen Bomb
nor tailor-made diseases. Thus, the scientist inevitably winds up in Hell, the
epitome of "Reason". The Magician knows where he is going, dares to go there and
will what he will discover and create. His work (ideally) is the
transmogrification of Hell. Moreover, about what he does he can make no
statement, because it is always unique, never a repeatable "trick". That is, he
is in the business, not as the scientist is of "finding" meaning, but of
"creating" it. But we have to remember that the phenomenological world is an
illusion, which requires the magician always to remain watchful of the illusory
nature of what he is doing.
Life without magic is not possible. Moreover, the important "passages" of life
cannot be handled except in a frank context of High Magic: birth, adolescence,
marriage, death, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC CIRCLE
The purpose of the circle drawn around the magician is to keep him separated
from both mundane and demonic forces. One's magical aura is normally extended
far into everyday life, but in the particularly vulnerable state of invocation,
one's concentration is much too inner-directed and narrow to be able to protect
oneself if the circumference is too large. Moreover, there are some cautious
magicians who insist on coverage above and below them, as well.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC, CONTAGIOUS
What have once been in physical contact maintain their links forever,
independently of time or space. This is a current theory of physics as well. For
111
purposes of Voudon, hair, fingernails, etc. are still linked to the subject, who
can be touched by them.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC, HIGH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC, IMITATIVE
Or "Image Magic". The use of images and imitations of real things in order to
affect them. Any ritual can enact symbolically what is desred to happen in real
life. It has both positive and negative sides. A phobia can be cured by
transferring it to an animal which can then be destroyed (in the imagination).
Or one can conjure the image of a hated person and use it to wreak vengeance on
that person. Visualization is effectively used in curing cancer.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC, LOW
The use of rituals for trivial, personal ends - getting money, attracting
someone, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC, NATURAL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC, SYMPATHETIC
112
Based on the sympathy between similar things, even at a distance. What is done
to one happens to the other. If the wife of a sailor breaks a water jug, her
husband's ship may go down. Eskimo boys are forbidden to play cat's cradle, lest
their fingers someday get entangled in the fishing nets. In the natural world
these common qualities are called "signatures". A cause introduced into the one
results in an effect on the other. It is on this principle that Voodoo curses
kill, that rain dances produce rain and that watching television teaches us what
the real world is like.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGICIAN, THE
Th first arcanum of the Tarot, letter Beth (because Beth, not Aleph, is the
first letter in the bible). One is the essential number of Power and Magic,
since it arrives all on its own out of Zero and is inevitably "unique" and
unrepeatable. So difficult is the Enigma of the initiate, that we can only point
to this entire dictionary as one definition (amongst thousands). In Crowley's
redesigned Atus, in his Book of Thoth, he can manage with no fewer than three
different versions of The Magician!
Since everyone who lives is possessed of the magical ability to transform matter
and to produce mental worlds, then everyone is a magician and no one dare single
himself out as a being special. For this reason, early Tarotists preferred to
call this card "The Juggler" in order to indicate one who has made a profession
out of exploiting that very illusion which is the real material world. The
Magician, however, in the most archetypal sense, is a representative of male
sexual virginity.
For divinatory purposes, The Magician signifies the overcoming of a problem
through sheer invention, drawing from the deepest levels of the self without
anyone's help.
Finally, fundamentally, the Magician is the juggler of the dual current,
comprised of the Active and Passive Alternating Forces of action. He is the
circuit of the electricity that moves the world. He is the initiator of any
action, the generated thesis.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGIC WORD
The root of all Magic is The Word. Ho Logos . In every culture, the shaman is
the person with the largest vocabulary (although, ironically, he may express
himself clumsily). He is also the one who sees beyond a person's words to what
that person really means. For the magician, as for the poet, words are fluid and
changing. Puns, paradoxes and triple/quadruple meanings come and go with varying
degrees of exactitude or "correctness". Magical meanings derive from context or
intention. Etymology is always strictly, historically, accurate, but usually
beyond the safe and unimaginative academic frontiers into the realm of
historical intuition. Where history and genuine insight leave off and illusion
begins it is sometimes difficult to say.
The Egyptian God of magic, Thoth (or Tahuti, "The Speaker") is self-created and
dwells in chaos. As he speaks, each word becomes a created thing (as in Greek a
"poem" means anything that has been made). Hunchback: Is Chaos the Void or is it
merely the pre-linguistic, Briatic world?
In our time when the television commercial has raped and perverted language for
the sake of profit, when words have little more value than the squawking of
parrots, it is difficult to imagine that there was once a mighty and living oral
tradition. The true magician has not forgotten.
Therefore the adept must be adept with words. The unitiatated believe that Magic
is entirely the result of uttering certain catchwords or phrases: "Hocus-Pocus-
Dominocus!" or "Hey Presto! Hi Jingo, begone!" Oddly enough, this bit of folk
wisdom is not as far off the mark as it might seem. Words do have power. Spells
can be evoked. PKD once said that for every individual in the world there exists
113
a special word or phrase, for him alone, which upon his hearing, would result in
his death. There is also another word that would heal him of anything. Most of
us, however, go through our whole lives without hearing either of these vital
words or phrases.
The words used by magicians, when they are not the nonsense syllables of
charlatans, tend to be words from archaic languages. Today these are primarily
Latin or Greek (in our culture), whereas in the 18th and 19th Century, ritual
words were usually taken from Hebrew. Hebrew magic itself borrowed from the
earlier Chaldaeans, Babylonians and Assyrians. Finally, there is Buddhism and
Yoga from Sanskrit, Tantrism from Tibetan, Taoism from Chinese and Sufism from
Arabic.
Says Her Bak , "Do not be negligent in finding and using the right word. Thoth
never replies to inexact medus."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGICK
Stands for theurgy of "god" work, i.e. the hexagram. "M/magic(k)," which is my
own spelling, is intended to cover all contingencies with a standard
designation. (Similarly, Qabalah = the traditional work, whereas Cabala refers
to any derivative, Gentile system). M/magic(k) should not be confused with
"sorcery", which is the practice of using formulas and rituals by the ordinary
mind to affect reality in self-seeking ways. "Magic", on the other hand, is
active participation of the higher consciousness in creative experiences and
mystical understanding.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAGNUM OPUS
The "Great Work". Synonyms for those engaged in this work: laborer, philosopher,
Israelite, brother, shoemaker, artist, carpenter, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAITREYA BUDDHA
The coming Buddha, the Next World. This Buddha will return five millennia after
Gautama's death.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAKHASHANAH
Crowley's "Word of the Aeon" (addressed to the 27th Aethyr, ZAA). Did he hope,
perhaps, in his omnipotence, thereby to prevent the present world from being or
becoming the long dreaded "Wordless" or "Nameless" Aeon?
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MALDEK
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Term coined by Mary Baker Eddy. Evil forces are always generated consciously or
unconsciously by our enemies. As we become more attuned to the positive forces,
the more open we become to all universal forces and the more likely it is that
114
we also make ourselves vulnerable to negative vibrations. Popularity usually
draws considerable malice along with its good will. The excruciating physical
pain that wracked Mrs. Eddy in her final years, which she was not supposed to be
feeling, was not attributed to any failing of Christian Science, but always to
"M.A.M.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MALKUNOFAT
The 23 tunnel of the dark tarot is the Old Ones rising out of the waters, as its
lightside equivalent, the Hanged Man is being lowered into the waters
(baptized).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MALKUTH
This is the tenth power chakra. "The Kingdom", or lower-most circle of the Tree
of Life. Corresponds in Buddhism to Samsara. Here is the gateway of the entire
manifested reality of matter - as opposed to Kether, the Crown, which is the
link to all non-manifestation.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MANA
In Hawaiian, Mana-o means "to think", that is, to make use of mana, the
elemental force of Nature. Kahunas heal and work magic through mana. That is why
it is important in any healing process to understand fully what processes are
involved. The higher and lower selves may do most of the work, but in special
cases the conscious mind is able to exert its power as well and tip the scales
to effect a perfect cure. So the more we understand of physiology, psychology,
medicine, bacteriology, cells, chemistry and so on the better we are able to
mana-o any illness or morbidity. The microscope and the magician's rattle serve
equally.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MANDALA
Circle of one's magical universe. All that one knows. To draw a mandala is to
attempt to center oneself. The wheel represents all the divine aspects of the
God one wishes to invoke and the center is the God himself.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MANDRAKE
There has long been an association of the mandrake root with magic; indeed in
popular culture of a half century or more ago, there was a fictional comic strip
character known as "Mandrake the Magician". Circe used the root in her brews and
in Genesis 30:14 it figures as a love potion. However, it no longer seems to be
especially psychedelic and unlike mushrooms or peyote cactus doesn't appear to
offer much in the way of inner transformation or enlightenment. Perhaps
botanical species evolve out of their human-bonding natures. The Chinese claim
it to be a youth restorer, i.e. an aphrodisiac, and insist that when you pull it
from the ground, it actually screams. It makes up a considerable portion of
Chinese herbology, although they call it "ginseng."
Probably, we no longer understand how to use it properly, having been too long
plied with substitutes for the real thing. It was common at one time for
115
unscrupulous merchants to carve the quite similar bryony root into the shape of
a mandrake root and sell it.
Our word, "mandrake", is merely the shortened form of the Greek Mandragoras. It
was once believed to be an emetic, a pain-killer, an assistance to conception
and a producer of drowsiness. John Allegro suggests that we can probably connect
mandragoras to Nam-Tar-Agar, the Sumerian word for "the sacred mushroom", the
same from which modern psychedelics derive.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MANSON, CHARLES
Latterday magician, who in 1971, with three members of his "family" were
convicted of murder. His rationale is that he is a conscious mirror of our
society, which sees in him a reflection of its own evil. As "man's son", which
he sometimes calls himself, he is the embodiment of mankind, just as Christ,
being God's Son, was the embodiment of God. Therefore, any evil that Manson does
is simply the will of Man through him.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MANTRA(M)
A secret utterance or secret vibrational name of a god that when unleashed can
have a potent effect. The most popular Hindu examples are "Om mani padmi om";
"Tat tvam asti!" and "Om namah shivaya." Riland adds "Om! Bhur Buhva Swah. Tat
savitur varnyam devasya dhimahi, dhiyo yo na prachodayat." Gurus sometimes
supply their chelas with secret and "tailored" mantras. Mantras are extremely
important meditational engines and provide powerful foundations for the psyche.
Here is an old pain mantram:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MARDUK
The head of the Babylonian pantheon, God of the spring sun, and God of the
Magician. He is the "Bel" of the O.T., son of El and Damkina. He was the first
champion of the Gods in their fight against Tiamat. Marduk in Chaldaea was the
equivalent of Jupiter.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Amongst other things: the X in the O, which is the fusion of lingam and yoni,
producing the lightning flash of Armageddon.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MARS
Planet of energy and courage. The ability to initiate and complete a task. The
indicator of how we oppose and challenge the world. The word probably does not
derive from Mavors, "War, destruction", but from Martulus, Marcus, etc. i.e. the
"Hammer of the Thunder God" and related to Mer - shine" (Sun and Lightning),
referring to the spring storms and planting. We can see the latter etymology
paralleled in the Teutonic connection of Thor to his hammer, which was called
Mjolnir . (Linguistically, "r" and "l" are the same letter).
116
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MARTYA YOGA
Not to be confused with Abhava, a yoga in which the yogin envisions himself as
"non-existence". Martya yoga is a means of inducing self-inflicted death by
awakening the "sleeping coiled serpent" in each of us. It is self-taught, but
inadvisable to call it forth unless one is prepared to follow through to the
end. Once seriously begun, the process cannot easily be reversed (suicice is
more easily induced, it is said, by a secret acupuncture point).
So long as we continue to let go of the lower rung in oder to reach for the
higher, we can ascend the ladder of evolution. As we give way to fatigue we
settle for mere repetition and holding fast. Similarly, the Yoga of Death
teaches us to pass through the gates between worlds with courage. Life and Death
are but ways of matter which Spirit sometimes uses. In life also we are capable
of moving between dimensions, from one world to the next. And if we know how to
travel indefinitely from dimension to dimension, it follows that we can
ultimately alter exterior Reality by both natural magick and objective magic.
Self and World are connected. This does not mean, however, that we have the
right to consign whomever we choose of our fellow souls to some unfortunate
dimension, without understanding what we are doing. To attempt to remove evil
from one sphere is simply to send it to another, perhaps even less appropriate
place. Nor may we ourselves blithely move from one dimension to the next,
whenever the problems of the world begin to weigh a bit heavily on us. That
would be to leave an endless trail of unfinished business and irresponsibility
behind ourselves like muddy footprints. The best life, therefore, is the life of
sacrifice in the here and now - not sacrifice through dying, but through living.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAT/DEMAT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MATTERMITTER
Device for teleportation. Dimensional worlds are one thing, interstellar travel
(via mattermission) is another. For certain statistical reasons, it's not likely
that mattermission is what happens when "a critical mass" is reached. Therefore
it isn't likely as a stellar/mental event either. That's not to discredit
engineering, but rocket ships are a silly way of getting around the universe -
like using a steam roller on a bicycle path.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAYA
Sanskrit: illusion, i.e., the true nature of the world. Matter, according to
HPB, as the "veiling spirit."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MAYAN CALENDAR
The Mayan year, beginning always on July 26, called a tun consisting of 360 days
(called kin ) and 5 or 6 epagomenals called Vayeb , weeks, called Uinals , are
13 kin long and numbered perpetually over a span of 20 days, named as follows:
Imix, Ik, Akbal, Kan, Chicchan, Cimi, Manik, Lamat, Muluc, Oc, Chuen, Eb, Ben,
Ix, Men, Cib, Caban, Edznab, Cauac, Ahau. The months, which are 20 days long,
117
but numbered from 0 to 19 are as follows: Pop, Yax, Vo, Zac, Zip, Ceh, Zotz,
Mac, Xec, Kankin, Xul, Muan, Yaxkin, Pax, Mol, Kayab, Ch'en, Cumku. . . and the
Vayeb intercalaries.
Time is reckoned in units of 20. Thus 20 tun make a katun, 20 katun make a
baktun, 20 baktun make a pictun, 20 pictun make a calabtun, 20 calabtun make a
kinchiltun, and 20 kinchiltun make an Alautun, which latter amounts to
163,040,000 years.
The present cycle began in the year 3113 B.C. and ending in 2012 A.D., is the
final part of a 26,000 year cycle (a zodiacal age), and (according to José
Argüelles) June 20, 1986 was "10 Ben, 9 Kayeb, 12.18.14.18.9" meaning baktun 12,
katun 18, year 14, vinal 18, day 9 and kin 1862599 (number of days elapsed from
the initiation point of the Great Cycle)."
The "Harmonic Convergence" of 1987 was the beginning of the end of the last five
years of the Hell cycle. 1992 is the beginning of the final 20-year countdown to
the completion of the 26,000 year galactic cycle. (The time it takes the sun to
circle the Pleiades). One of the stars in the Pleiades is called "Maya."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MEANING
It is through meaning, rather than belief, that we are able to transform reality
at any level, because meaning changes from moment to moment. The work of shaman,
witch-doctor, magician is precisely to provide meaning when tradition and
authority have become rigid, outmoded and useless fossils. As societies become
more chaotic and disorganized, the burden on the magician grows. His task now
becomes to help in the further breaking up of the old systems, to pulverize them
out of existence.
Since the discovery of meaning is spontaneous, the magical work is a collection
of discoveries - they must absolutely be left behind as so much excrement. The
magician is interested solely in the green edge of consciousness. On the other
hand, meaning is absolutely forbidden to Xtianity and to practical science
alike. Their mutual common denominator is always, "Thou shalt not know!"
When, however, societies become too fraught with magical meaning, that also
becomes a burden and rigid order begins to take the place of freedom of action.
Eventually, structured tradition drives out magic and the cycle begins anew.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MEDITATION
A means of allowing the deepest self to speak. Meditation is really only deep
thinking, concentrated and free from distraction. It is an energizing process,
not a tranquilizer, as so many believe. It can also concern itself with self-
programming or autohypnosis, on a more practical level.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MEMENTO VIVERE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MENHIR
------------------------------------------------------------------------
118
MEONTOLOGY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MERCURY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MERKABAH
In the Qabalah this is the "chariot" of God, in which one is carried through the
seven mansions (or Hekhaloth) of Heaven. The "recital" for understanding) of
secret runes is necessary to pass through them safely: reminiscent of the
Gnostics.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MESOPOTAMIAN MAGIC
The Qabalah owes its origin to prior Assyrian origins. The usual attributions to
the Etz Chaim are:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
METHYPNOX
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MIND
Mind very much resembles matter, both in its degrees of density and in its
peculiarity of design. That's not surprising since the one derives from the
other. We might also say that they are mirror images of one another. Just as
119
matter varies in the size of its conglomerations, from the circumferences of
giant stars and galaxies to the infinitely small subatomic world of its
constituents, so mind ranges through the levels of experience infinitely above
and below consciousness. There is no Not-Mind - not ever - except within the
Ultimate Void itself.
Hypnosis sheds a faint light on certain levels of consciousness beneath the
ordinary. By means of the intense concentration and focusing of attention that
hypnosis evokes, we are able to accomplish feats of mind and body that otherwise
only yogis know. Hypnosis works by forcing a thread of memory awareness deep
into the mind labyrinth, which, however deeply it may penetrate the darkness, is
always tied tightly to the ordinary consciousness at the top. Without that
Ariadne's thread, the more deeply we were to concentrate on something, the more
we would be lost to the world. The more attention we bring to bear on anything,
the deeper into a simulacrum of sleep we proceed, as our surroundings and the
outside world disappear into this darkness and outer sensations are walled off -
presumably to prevent distraction. Since this state of concentration so much
resembles sleep, in fact, the slightest lapse of the will sends us drifting
towards unconsciousness. Ordinary sleep is a mirror-like repetition of the
fragmentation of superconsciousness that we shall see results in abandonment of
the self. However, as concentration proceeds ever more inward, the more the
inner landscape is illuminated and narrowed. This "inner light" of laser-like
consciousness is shared by the vegetable kingdom. (Its character can be
recognized in psychedelic intoxication of various kinds). Finally, as we proceed
into the unconscious itself we enter a quantum universe of our own. Here we find
ourselves in the very "consciousness" of matter itself, with its links to
everything in the universe. Presumably, death is but a deeper descent still, a
proceeding into the actual heart of Mind, leading into the Void, which is the
womb of all manifestations. Ordinary consciousness is obviously the link between
higher and lower planes. It is a delicate balance between retreat into self-
absorption and abandonment of the self to the sensory experience. It is
maintained with great difficulty, for we have a tendency to drift out of it into
one or the other of the two diametrically opposed realms of experience that it
separates. These realms, of course, are infinitely more attractive than boring,
old, routine mind. Within this narrow water-hole of ordinary consciousness,
however, lie all the accomplishments and discoveries of human history. Indeed,
it is this narrow and unreliable bridge that human society has learned to
exploit as "civilization". Unfortunately, it has been examined but superficially
and little has been done to stretch its dimensions or protect it from
disintegration. Consequently we know almost nothing either of its limitations or
its potential powers.
Heightened awareness is the opposed of focused attention or concentration.
Attention becomes more and more generalized and cognizant of every petal on
every flower in the garden, then every vein in every leaf. . . But now, as
attention fans out, mind loses its coherency and begins to fragment. Under the
influence of psychedelic drugs the attention is so fragmented that it merges
altogether with the outer world and the inner self is abandoned to the chaos of
the interface. The loss of the inner self, however, is usually accompanied by
extreme panic as it attempts to jump from scintilla to scintilla.
For a time, the fragmentation of expanding mind can be kept under control by the
use of amphetamines or cocaine in ever-increasing dosages. By means of these
substances, alertness and intelligence are increased because attention is spread
infinitely thin across a wider and wider spectrum of sensory experience coming
in from the outer world. The "outer world" includes, of course, the
consciousness of one's own body, as well as reflexive self-observation. At the
same time, the inner self is being supplied with increased energy and speed too,
so that it can maintain consciousness of itself and stave off chaos by racing
back and forth around the ever-enlarging periphery of experience. As we are all
very well aware, however, this path quickly comes to an end.
Fortunately, the heightening of externalized consciousness can be achieved
without drugs, through mysticism. The sensory awareness can either be bypassed
or used as the vehicle of its own transcendence. If the inner self is
voluntarily released to heightened consciousness, which we sometimes refer to as
120
leaving the ego behind in order to enter Nirvana, peace descends at once and
chaos is transformed into the so-called "mystical experience." This process,
once begun, can continue into such total absorption that the individual
consciousness ceases to exist at any point and we could refer to that as a more
or less permanent trance.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MIRROR
As one of the tools for "knowing" the self, mirrors are highly important.
Although for a person possessed of youth and beauty the deliberate breaking of a
mirror can serve as a symbolic sacrifice to Venus, to break a mirror
accidentally is a sign that one has ceased to look "within" for one of the long,
seven-year "Ages of Man". Hathor's mirror is defensive (like Perseus's shield)
and used to reflect evil back upon itself. It is believed by the uninitiated
that witches and warlocks fear mirrors, will not have them in their houses and,
in any case, witches have no reflection! Like most superstitions, there is
something behind it, though the truth is far from ordinary people imagine. One
of the sine qua nons of M/magic(k) is that the initiate keep to his own
boundaries of selfdom until his unorthodox procedures and formulae have been
completely worked out. External "consensus" reality is a distraction from "the
wisdom of the self" during this creative period. Strictly as devices for knowing
the self, mirrors are no longer of much use to the advanced magician (except for
very rare rituals), who dwells more and more in his center.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MISTLETOE
The Encyclopedia Britannica cites Pliny the Elder as the authority for Druidic
mistletoe lore. As a tea it was considered both an antidote for poison and a
cure for sterility and barrenness. Thus, to kiss someone under the mistletoe is
symbolic of its purpose. Some scholars call mistletoe the golden bough of
classical legend.
In the French comic strip, Asterix le Gaulois, the tribal wizard, Panoramix,
using his golden serpe, collects mistletoe for potions. These potions faithfully
confer superhuman strength on the drinker, much as spinach does for Popeye. It's
inevitable that we should think of physical strength as virility (maintaining
erection) and from virility to fertility is a matter of course.
The word is Anglo-Saxon misteltan (the -tan being a "twig") from German Mistel,
"mistletoe", a diminutive of Mist, "dung". For the mythic mind, excretion and
birth are synonymous. Mistletoe was assumed to be the oak's product - hence,
fertile. This also reflects, as we've seen many times before, the association,
by the Unconscious, of supernatural powers with any "product" of the body.
We nature-deprived postmoderns should bear in mind that mistletoe is botanically
unique. It is the only highly-evolved flowering plant that is parasitic; this
unusual botanical fact should automatically alert the M/magic(k)all mind to the
possibility that it must have unusual pharmaceutical properties as well. A cure
for barrenness, of course, and an aphrodisiac are two entirely different things.
There is no known chemical substance that has a specific, predictable
aphrodisiac effect on human beings. We have too many complicated and individual
reactions for that. Everyone knows, for instance, that alcohol isn't really an
aphrodisiac. It simply releases inhibitions, some of which may be sexual, but
not necessarily. Most drugs don't stimulate the sexual centers at all. They
cause fatigue as they wear off and it is the fatigue (or lactic acid) so
generated that acts as the stimulant.
Amongst the Germans the decorating of trees for religious effects goes back to
pagan times. The Teutonic religions, however, borrowed much from the more
advanced Celts and "tree-worshipping" is always associated with the latter. In
the 8th Century it was St. Boniface who dedicated the fir tree to X, thus
profaning the sacred oak of Odin (we see how the Teutons and the Druids had
121
already joined forces). But the custom of bringing greenery into the house
during the winter solstice is an ancient custom, long preceding Xtianity.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MITHRA(S)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MOKSHA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MONAD/MONAS
Any entity acting as "one": the self, earth, universe, a society, even the life
force at the atomic level. HPB (The Secret Doctrine) pointed out that "each atom
is doomed to incessant differentiation."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MONOLATRY
Worship of a single God. Many consider the idea of "one" God a step backward.
Monotheism, it is claimed, is clumsy - it attributes everything to a single fons
et origo and then forbids us to examine this resultant "Everything Factory"
because it is beyond human comprehension. In other words, monotheism is just
another, more pernicious symptom of atheism or agnosticism, except that the
believers create a fetishistic idol and then stand in awe of their own
ignorance, which it represents.
The Egyptians were not such sticklers about keeping boundaries between
monotheism and polytheism. If the Xtians were honest they'd admit that the
Trinity is pure polytheism. Indeed, not even the Jews are strictly monotheistic,
as their hierarchies of angels indicate, as the Hebrew language itself betrays
its polytheistic origins. And as Hakim Bey says, if the muslims understood
Islam, they'd worship idols.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MOON
Arcanum number 18. Hebrew letter Qoph (meaning the "back of the head" or the
seat of sexual energies). The reason Diana is the goddess of chastity is that
the Moon's monthly visible link to ovulation serves as proof of virginity. But
the Moon also symbolizes Occult Truth and witchcraft, the so-called "left-hand
path." As one of the three manifestations of Divine Light, however, there can be
no evil in it. It is the light of Khephra about to rise, that is, it is the lux
tenebris, the light we call darkness. It is also the Subconscious Mind.
Astrophysically the moon is a "corpse". But then most of the planets are "dead"
worlds. The greenhouse effect on Venus is horrific, the atmosphere of Jupiter is
poisonous, the outer worlds are frozen solid and so on. We might say that the
Sun is "alive", but if so, it is much too alive for us, certainly, with its
122
nuclear explosions and temperatures upwards of millions of degrees Fahrenheit.
No, we must, as Genesis instructs, think of the lights in the heavens as
"illuminators" and "signs", rather than as possible human abodes. By that token,
the Moon is not a "dead world" but Diana's silvern lamp!
Some astrologers say the Moon is the Personality, whose chief characteristics
are "protection and envy. What they mean is that it is the archetypal Anima (as
the Sun is the archetypal Animus) and the ruler of the emotions, moods,
feelings, desires, etc. The actual "New" Moon is not the conjunction of the Sun
and Moon in the same sign - that phase is known as the "Dark of the Moon". The
fine crescent of the "New Moon" occurs in the sign just following the
conjunction. It is the beginning of the lunar month and known as Sahar Dag. It
occurs five twelve-hour periods after the listed new moon.
The Atu corresponds to Khephra about to rise, says Crowley, hence is one of the
three sacred "lights" and cannot be evil. It is also the realm of Yesod on the
Tree of Life.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MOROS
God of Doom.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
John Keel's seminal work on UFOs, involving, among other things, a "7-foot, red-
eyed monster with wings" seen in West Virginia. Keel, however, does not believe
ufos come from outer space and he was thus a fore-runner of Valée's theories.
Says Keel, they are ". . . ultraterrestrials - beings and forces that coexist
with us, but are of another time frame, that is, they operate outside the limits
of our space-time continuum, yet have the ability to cross over into our
reality. This other world, however, is not a place (as Mars or Andromeda are
places), but is a state of energy." He says the important thing is the lights.
They change people's heads - either these lights enlighten them or they drive
them mad (in the way that psychedelic drugs can do). The rest is all a cover-up
for that - the UFO, etc. assumes the shape of current cultural beliefs and
expectations under the control of extradimensional intelligence. However,
someone or something doesn't want us to know the real nature of these phenomena.
Hence the "men in black", Air Force secrecy, etc. But the lights continue.
Apparently the absurdities are intended to keep the contactees from being
believed by others. The reason is still generally unexplored.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MOUNTAIN
Mountains, being the exaltation of earth and the home of the gnomes, mountains
enjoy special occult prestige. Mt. Meru was to the Hindus the navel of the
world, Mt. Olympus the home of the Greek Gods, and so on. The Chinese
philosopher, Hiouen-Thsang found his deliverance to the Buddha in a mountain of
light. Many magicians, Crowley in particular, were fond of alpinism because its
sheer life-and-death physicality differs so markedly from the purely mental
world of occult practice. In California, Mt. Shasta has recently been the site
of much New Age work and the following verse is dedicated to it:
123
Oreads rise and climb with me,
As palmers did on pilgrimage,
A very Ararat and magic Alp:
Whose craving peak a snowy pyramid doth crown
A faerie kingdom high
Above all humdrum vales.
-- Anon.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MOUNTAINS OF DARKNESS
The necromantic land ruled by the dark angels, Aza and Azael. In Hebrew
tradition, sorcerers visit here to study.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MUMMY
Although imperfect souls must be liberated from their bodies for the good of
evolution, so that they can be reincarnated and re-worked, the Egyptians did not
want the souls of the Adepts to be reabsorbed. Therefore the bodies of the
exceptional ones were preserved in order to act as anchors and talismans for
their souls. Body and soul, it will be recalled, were not all there was to the
spirit. Since matter and spirit are the opposite poles of the mystery, material
evolution and spiritual manifestation occur in tandem, complementing one
another. Every physical shell, as a manifested spiritual entity represents a
lengthy history, a culmination of many immaterial lives acting as Spirit, Soul
and Mind on the Archetypal, Formative and Creative planes. In this way, helpful
analogies can be abstracted from the body's movements, gestures and positions.
Similarly, in the Adepts, the speech, the ideas and hopes of the soul become
guiding beacons and the lessons of life and death can
124
be read in them. (Adapted from R.G. Torrens' The Golden Dawn: The Inner
Teachings).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
MYSTERY
From Gk. myein, "to keep the mouth shut". Mysteries are occult truths to be
deliberately kept from the uninitiated. "Swine" is a metaphor for the
uninitiated. And we are warned not to "cast pearls" before them or at least not
to manifest the unmanifest idly. To Keep Silent is perhaps the most important of
the tetramorphic commands.
There is a practical reason for keeping silent about private or creative
projects, especially while they're still in the planning stage. Any talking
about a plan will be a talking out of it, because talking is an action of it own
and automatically substitutes for physical action. Those poets and novelists who
hang out in coffee shops engaging one another in endless serious discussions
should hardly be surprised when they return to their silent rooms only to find
they have nothing left over to put on paper!
Plans must also be hidden until the moment comes to act or others will interfere
with them.
It has been said that the wise man speaks in riddles as much as possible.
Enlightenment is best expressed through ritual, works of art, joking and exotic
behavior, rather than through actual messages in so many explicit terms.
Esoteric words are used to ensure that the seeker can understand only if he has
reached a certain level on his own. For example, to convince an ignorant person
that he is a God would be to unleash not merely an intolerable egotism but could
even trigger overt psychopathic behavior. The greatest truths are multi-
dimensional life-long fonts of revelation, disclosing themselves to successive
stages of understanding, little by little, in keeping with one's experiences.
But throughout all of this, notice that the command is "Silence" and not
isolation. It is permissible to read and write books at any level, because the
reader can exercise selectivity and can stop and start wherever he chooses at
the writer's "silent" words on paper (or vidscreen). One is always a captive
audience of the spoken word, whereas to read is an outgoing, positive activity
taking place in total freedom. Therefore, the reader has proved, by virtue of
his persistence and attentionality that he is entitled to instruction - having
found the tree he is allowed to extract its fruit. Then, having tasted, he will
discover for himself whether or not it is life-sustaining.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
1. The Void begets generation, according to its own natural law, without
external implication.
2. The first step in any undertaking is the most significant. Upon its
character alone depends whether any work will be completed or, if completed,
successful.
3. Everything is everything else - without exception.
4. Life itself, on any level, is religion enough.
5. To Dare is the secret of creation. To Know is the secret of happiness. To
Persist is the secret of success. To Keep Silent is the secret of secrets.
6. Belief can act as a focusing or funneling agent that enables us to express
single, powerful ideas, without competing distractions. However, belief can be
false, and reliable knowledge achieves the same ends.
7. Love is a pragmatic aspect of consciousness and is therefore not an
emotion.
8. There are infinite realities. Not all of them are rational.
9. Gravity is the sum of related or unrelated discrete energies in
propinquity.
125
10. Reality can be changed radically, i.e. at the root, in startling ways, by
any series of small, deliberate acts.
11. Everything evolves on all planes, simultaneously.
12. Opposites are merely two ends of the same string - pull one end and the
other must follow in the same direction. Therefore, don't think that by making
something worse, that will cause a reaction to make it better.
13. Any knot can be cut, but it is better for the soul to untie the knot or to
endure it.
14. Death, like all physical phenomena, is also an illusion. Things come into
existence and go out of existence according to their will, but nothing is lost.
Anything can be retrieved from oblivion at any time.
15. All beings are as immortal as they choose to be.
16. Good which depends upon evil in order to exist, is itself thereby evil.
17. Man was intended to be the dragoman of all consciousness. Complete
intelligence requires at least three elements.
18. To see the world afresh at every moment is a prerequisite of
enlightenment.
19. Omniscience and the Akashic Records are available to anyone who is willing
to take considerable pains to look.
20. Since all things are at the peak of their existence at this moment, they
are also at the peak of perfection, yet this perfection will be surpassed in the
next moment.
21. You are God.
22. As above, so below. As within, so without. As left, so right. As being, so
non-being.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
N
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NAGRIKSHAMISH
A "Forgotten One." The Dog of Sirius, Orthrus. Grant refers to this as "The red
passage of Samadhi, Blood-Vision." It is not necessary to invoke it, for it is
living in us all.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NAGUAL
Castaneda's term for the self (an alter ego or even a witch), as opposed to
tonal, "ego." A Mexican word meaning "magic, mystery, disguise, double." The ego
is a mask for the self. Kenneth Grant says that Don Juan's nagual is the "world
of non-being" (his ubiquitous "Universe B" whose entrance is via Woman).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NAM-MYOHO-RENGE-KYO
(Japanese for: "Glory to the lotus sutra of the mystical law.") This chant,
under the auspices of Nichiren Shoshu of America, a Buddhist sect, and delivered
before an altar containing a sacred scroll in a black box, is believed to help
bring about a world of unity and peace. It has been adapted out of context by
many American non-Buddhists, simply as a mantram for the granting of personal
wishes.
126
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NAME
Nomen est numen. No name ever does justice to the person or thing designated by
it and so, in the strictest sense, to call anything by its name is to blaspheme
it.
The Egyptians -- certainly Ra and Isis -- insisted that the names of the Gods
were even more powerful than the Gods themselves. Everything has a secret name
which is its real name. "To be" and "to name" are the same thing in the
Babylonian language. Amongst the Dogon so means "real" language as distinct from
the howling of beasts or the gibberish of foreign tongues.
It was because the ancient Egyptians believed so strongly in the vitality of
names that a person's name (ren) was considered one of his "bodies." All
magicians experiment with assuming different names because our names determine
the nature of the events that gravitate toward us. We must never forget,
however, that no one is his name. To identify totally with any name is to turn
to stone.
Names are also like clothes -- they can become you or you can become them. Along
with all the other bodies we inhabit, the Egyptians also had the renpit ("name"
body), an extra post-life soul. "John" or "Mary" are actually manifestations of
you. We can assume these masks as we need them -- or not, if we don't. Those who
have been disfigured and must undergo plastic surgery and skin grafts must dwell
in the lowest circle of their own private hell. They actually become the
horrible demon, Yog-Sothoth, God of Infernal Transitions and Lord of the Abyss,
with the bulging eyes, tentacles, etc. But what such patients become is really
only the renpit body of the monster, so they identify with it only long enough
to draw on its hideous strength. Otherwise they wouldn't have anything to hold
onto. It is in this way that the ugliest devils and most dangerous dragons can
also serve as resources for us. Later on, with a bit of effort, supposedly, we
can return to being the Buddha or Odin or Apollo.
Note: To disguise the true nature of a thing, just give it a new name!
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEBUCHADNEZZAR
Jehovah punished this king of Babylon for the hubris of presuming himself to be
divine, by causing him to behave like an animal and eat grass.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NECRONOMICON
Lovecraft's (fictional?) grimoire. (See CTHULHU.) Its motto: "That is not dead
which can eternal lie, and with strange eons even death may die."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEGENTROPY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEOMENIUM
Conjunction of Sun and Moon. New Moon. Time of greatest division between
Conscious and Unconscious. Time for beginning new projects.
127
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEOLEXICAL ENCODING
Naming of any biode or machine circuit that has not been named before.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEOPLATONISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEOTERISM
The study of and predilection for the new, to a somewhat morbid (hence, very
interesting) degree.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEPHELIM
The so-called "giants" mentioned in the Old Testament, who supposedly preceded
Adam. In Hebrew, however, nefelim also means "the fallen ones" (or "those who
have descended"), leading some contemporary writers, such as Zecharia Sitchin,
to assume that they may have been visitants from another world. Even the Norse
mythology places the giants before the Gods and the one version of their
Underworld is Nifelheim, coldest and darkest of the 9 hells. It means "Home of
mists." From nifel, cognate of Latin nebula, "cloud" and Sanskrit nabhas, "sky."
The Judaic mythology states that it was the "Watchers of the Throne of God" who
were attracted by the earth women, fell, mated with them, and produced the
128
giants. The giants, in turn, taught man everything it has taken until the 20th
Century to sort out. (See OZ.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEPHESH
The animal instincts appropriate to the chakra of Yesod, realm of the Moon.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEPTUNE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NETER
For those raised in the monotheistic tradition, the concept of many Gods is
difficult to accept. We should understand, however, that for the Egyptians all
of life was a religico-magical experience in which everyone and everything
shared in divinity. When you separate the one from the many, you always obtain a
god. Therefore, in their hieroglyphs a "God" was depicted by an ax, since an ax
chops things up and separates the "one from the many." And these Gods were
called neteru, a word very close in meaning to our word "Nature," in the sense
of "the nature of" something. Thus, Ptah was the neter of Creation, Isis the
neter of Mystery, Thoth the neter of speech and writing, Anubis the neter of the
dead, and so on. Pharoah was the neter of his people and your soul is the neter
of yourself.
There is no indication of popular of folk etymology linking neteru to Latin
natus, naturus, "born, a-borning." On the other hand, there is no indication
neter and nature aren't connected. Says Her Bak: "One must search for the means
of making or undoing something always within its own nature."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NETZACH
The seventh qabalistic power zone on the Tree of Life, the abode of Venus,
concerned with feelings, sensations, etc. It is victory over the fear to
experience.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEW AEON
The new time of illumination based not on wishful thinking but upon deep,
laborious insight.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEW AGE
129
The current renaissance of mystical awareness, beginning circa 1968 and now
largely given over to commercial enterprises designed to take advantage of a
phenomenal growth of popular interest in the occult. Proper term should be "New
Aeon."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEWTIME
(See also DRUIDIC MONTHS.) The calendar to begin in the year 2000 and replace
Gregorian time with a 365-day year of 13 months of 28 days each, plus one extra
"unnamed" day at year's end. Every first of the month begins on a Monday and
every fourth year is a New Moon. The equinoxes and solstices occur always on the
same dates of the year.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NEXHAGUS
One of Lovecraft's "Forgotten Ones." Grant calls him "The elder jester of the
Pre-Create." A blend of Fool, Magus, Tower. He is Choronzon's brother, who
dwells at the killing and curing center of laughter and has drawn the blueprint
of human thought patterns.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NIANTIEL
The watcher of the 24th Tunnel. This figure from The Nightside of Eden
corresponds to death in the conventional Tarot In Kenneth Grant's distortion,
however, this is the path of sodomy, the reverse of Tiphareth, the "infernal sun
in Amenta, the phallus in anus as distinct from the supernal sun." He also
includes the scorpion and beetle as symbols of the "Dark Sun." The mysteries
here evoked are sex magic and death magic, naturally, as well as "black magic"
and Voodoo generally.
The sickness attributed to Niantiel was cancer, even before the advent of AIDS.
The engineers of this disease, however, have sealed themselves off from all
possibility of Salvation. The evil that Kenneth Grant saw -- to turn the Qliphah
of Death into sodomy -- has at last been realized and the Kingdom of Hell is
complete. The path between Tiphareth and Netzach is now the paved highroad
between Belphagor and Baal.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
999
Eternal Evolution (past, present, future). This is the most mystical number of
all. It is the number of the Archon of the Ending Aeons. 999 is the year in
which Kukulcan (Quetzalcoatl) died. It is the name of a very high IQ Society.
999 is the final transmutation of the current that began with 333, reached its
culmination of evil mysticism in 666 and which will unlock the gates of the
Otherworld at the end of this cycle's unfolding. It has also been appropriated
by the J. R. "Bob" Dodds mock-cult (The Church of the Sub-Genius) as its seal,
but is (for them) totally without significance or occult purpose, except as
another symbol to subvert in their addiction to chaos.
9 to the 9th power is 387,420,489, which is sure to have some important meaning.
Breaking that
down, 3 + 8 + 7 = 18 = 9; 4 + 2 + 0 = 6; 4 + 8 + 9 = 21 = 3; and ultimately 9 +
6 + 3 = 18 =
1 + 8 = 9. (See NUMEROLOGY.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
130
NIRVANA
As sickness, age and death impel us to recede ever more deeply into ourselves
and we discover that the illusory world outside is but the creation of our own
minds, we begin to realize the bitter truth that there is no death either. If
life is agony, there is no resting, for no sooner dead than ... reborn! And the
torment of life must be endured again and again, until even amnesia wears thin
and we find that we are nothing more nor less than hapless old Sisyphus himself.
And if we pursue things far enough, it must be admitted that there even comes a
time when we must accept our identity with the terrible Abraxas. (The final,
ironic punishment of the atheist is that he himself, in mournful solitude, must
bear the yoke of immortal godhood.)
Now it is that we remember the message of the Buddha -- that there is a way out
of the endless cycle of birth and redeath. We can step off the wheel of Karma
into Nirvana. Buddhism's goal is Nirvana, or release form the bonds of
existence. The Sanskrit word means "blown away" or "blown out," i.e.,
extinguished, and since rebirth is the result of desire, freedom from rebirth is
attained by the removal of desire, so that, for lack of fuel, the torch of
rebirth blows out and is no longer passed on. Therefore, we can achieve Nirvana
now, in this life. The elimination of egoism and selfless aspiration are some of
the ways. That means the end of material existence, the attainment of Being,
rather than becoming, and union with Ultimate Reality. The Buddha calls this
"unborn, unoriginated, uncreated, unformed," as opposed to the born, originated,
created and formed phenomenal world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NO
One of the Forgotten Ones. The name of quiet erasing that removes the utterer
with it. Says Kenneth Grant: "I send my power forth, so I may eat more power."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NON-LOCALITY
It works on Time as well as Space. Thus every sub-atomic experiment affects the
Big Bang and reshapes the universe. Robert Anton Wilson: "Isomorphism and
synchronicity are both aspects of the basic non-locality of information."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NOOSPHERE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NOTARIQON
A form of gematria in which the letters of a word are used to spell out a
sentence or alternate or complementary meaning. Examples: E-G-O ("Externalized
Godling Obsession"), S-E-X ("Spontaneously-Erupting Xenomania"), etc.
Further examples:
and, finally
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NOTHING
The ultimate origin of the universe. The entire panoply of the manifest world is
but an expression or eversion of the primordial vacuum. Nothing always equals
something, so the underside of non-existence is existence. ("The reference of
things in existence is preformed in the realm of non-existence.") Anything can
be considered a universe, so the same thing that allowed the universe to come
out of nothing applies to anything else coming out of nothing. Nothingness, of
course, is the creative element in rooms, boxes, wombs, vacuums, empty sheets of
paper, etc.
Contrasting is an important aspect of Nothing. To understand a thing, its
opposite must be brought to bear. To add dark and light results in Nothing. To
subtract one equality from the other eliminates both minuend and subtrahend. All
opposites extend into nothing. Thus, the opposite of multiplication by tens is
the infinitesimals. The zero could have been used to measure the dimensions of
minus reality.
Importance and dominance are a function of location and position rather than of
substance per se.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NOUMENON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NUIT
Infinite space. She can stand in for Isis, but she is the non-conceptualizing
sky goddess. She contains the various lights of Heaven -- the stars, which
illuminate earthly (mundane) consciousness, which are the children of the Sun
(Superconscious) and Moon (Subconscious). Horus, Nuit's son, is the "freed"
consciousness, liberated in order to wander at will, unconfined by
particularity.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NUMEROLOGY
The first thing to remember about numbers is that each number, far from being
just an accretion of previous numbers, really is unique. Numbers are the
quintessence of symbology, and numerology appeals mostly to the abstract
metaphysician, just as, in science, mathematics appeals to the abstract-minded
scientist. Numerology, like astrology and palmistry, has a bad reputation
132
because it's so easily misunderstood and misused. Since we can all recognize
synchronicity, it's only natural to rush from there to the assumption that
coincidence is the same thing as divination. But, synchronicity is nothing more
than evidence that there are patterns of many kinds. It would be better if we
could de-emphasize the practical side of everything and concentrate on the
esthetics. The Egyptians used to teach that the most valuable things are the
most useless: the arts, for example, or philosophy, or gold.
Finally, we should remember that it was through the indolent adoption of the
easy decimal system (rather than the more perfect and exacting duodecimal
system) that Atlantis finally brought itself down. This mathematically lazy way
out is exactly the same path for which we have settled.
So numerology is simply the metaphysical side to numbers. One and one, for
instance, are two, not because arithmetic says so, but because being equally
"unique" they can't be reconciled as one, or "united," and are therefore at odds
and in conflict with each other, as opposites in a mutual duality or "duel."
Three, on the other hand, is a collection based on some kind of agreement, four
a quaternity based on crossed oppositions in perfect balance, and so one.
There are also different ways of dealing with numerology -- theoria and praxis.
In gematria, however, the idea is to add up the value of a word and then find
other words that add up to the same number. They would thus be equivalents. This
works rather well in Hebrew (to a lesser extent in Greek) but rather poorly in
English -- simply because of the intrinsic differences between languages.
Example: Jehovah has the same value as Chozeh ("seer" or "prophet"). Therefore,
to the ancient Jews, God and Prophesy would be practically synonymous.
Numerological reduction is a convenience. It's easier to deal with numbers from
1 to 10 than with great blobs like 847 or 9,556,431. But numerologists also add
before reducing. If a room contains 8 people, the numerology lecturer might
perhaps decide to deliver his "octave" message. If 3 more people arrived, he'd
change that to 11 which has an entirely different meaning from its reduction to
1 + 1 = 2. The higher the number, the more unstable its meaning becomes. For
example, 11 stands symbolically for all the higher numbers (above 10), which is
why 11 is the number of Sorcery.
The values of the Hebrew letters are: 1-ALEPH, 2-BETH, 3-GIMEL, 4-DALED, 5-HE,
6-VAU, 7-ZAYIN, 8-CHETH, 9-TETH, 10-YOD, 20-KAPH, 30-LAMED, 40-MEM, 50-NUN, 60-
SAMECH, 70-AYIN, 80-PE, 90-TZADDE, 100-QOPH, 200-RESH, 300-SHIN, 400-TAV, 500-
FINAL K, 600-FINAL M; 700-FINAL N, 800-FINAL P, 900-TZ, 1000-ALEPH (writ large).
In both Arab esoteric studies and in Judaic Cabal, such numbers form anagrams
and extend the power of words: e.g., 93=Greek Agape, 398=Neshek, the serpent,
and also Messiah.
The meanings of some of the numbers (my own attributions, plus some of Crowley's
gematria from Liber 777):
134
the Devil is called Lucifer, the light-bearer. (The holder of the torch is
himself in the darkness.)
16 Number of Eve; Number of human kalas (bodily secretions). In Egyptian
hieroglyphs, 16 symbolized delight because this is the age when a young man has
his first sexual experience. Coitus, thus, is 16 next to 16 = 1616. The Tower of
Babel. This is the struggle for Heaven as it erupts in words -- that is, the
understanding of oneself is not always able to communicate to others.
17 Tantric number of kalas! The masculine unity. (Trinity of Aleph, Vau, Yod).
Star of the magi. The Star is all those striving things -- hope, ambition,
faith, longing, etc. It feeds on itself and re-invigorates all that it touches.
It accomplishes what The Tower cannot.
18 Percentage of the Moon's surface varying from visible to invisible. The Moon
(twice 9). This is the solitary path itself, leading back into the inner being
and one's own enlightenment.
19 Number of the year of the lunar cycle; Xtian "Golden Number"; The feminine
glyph. The Sun. This is the ultimate, true enlightenment itself; the quest of
all our strivings.
20 Number of days in the Maya month. Kaph. Resurrection. Rebirth.
21 Mystic number of Tiphareth; Age of majority; 3 x 7. The World (as it is built
back up in a better way).
22 Letters in Hebrew alphabet; Major Arcana; Tunnel Sentinels.
23 The "glyph of (nascent) life"; Coincidence and Synchronicity.
24 Path of Scorpio (Scarlet Woman) or of the Water Demon. Letters in Greek
alphabet.
26 Tetragrammaton; Numbers of the Sephiroth of the Middle Pillar (without Maat);
Letters in English alphabet.
28 Lunar cycle of days. Solar cycle of years (1st day of week restored to same
day of week). Letters of Arabic alphabet. The numbers from 1 - 7 add up to 28 (1
+ 2 + 3 + 4 + 5 + 6 + 7).
29 The magic force itself, the masculine current. Days in moon cycle, feminine
current. 29 = 2 + 9 = 1 = 2.
30 Number of degrees in a sign. Ass; Lamedh.
31 Gematria of AL (God) also means "Not," key number of the New Aeon; The
highest feminine trinity -- zero through the glyph of the circle. (Great Modulus
of Zero.)
32 Number of gravity increase acceleration (32 feet per second per second);
Paths of the Qabalah.
33 Age of Christ; magical age in general.
34 Jupiter Kamea sum.
36 Star sapphire; the Sun; curses. Platonic duodecimal.
37 111/3; A prime number; sum of Daath (11) and the 4 Sephiroth of the Middle
Pillar (10 + 9 + 6 + 11 + 1). The unity itself in its balanced trinitarian
manifestation.
40 Mem; Babylonian rain period -- 40 days before festival of New Year, when
Pleiades visible. (Thus Jewish 40 days.) 40 days is the philosophical month and
40 the number of preparation, waiting, the wisdom of darkness and the natural
processes of solution and disintegration.
41 Percent of the Moon's surface hidden from earth; the yoni as a vampire force,
sterile. Hispanic number of homosexuality.
42 The completion of the elements experienced via darkness.
43 A number of orgasm -- especially the male.
44 Cabal; sand; blood/water; flame; Aquarius.
45 Adam.
47 The yoni as dynamic, prehensile, spasmodic, etc. Esprit de travail.
49 7 x 7. In Tibetan Bsm. 49 is the number of days spent in the Afterworld
between incarnations.
50 Number of minutes later the moon rises every night.
53 The yoni as instrument of pleasure (Hedonogenous.)
55 Phallos.
56 Word of Nu or Nuit (Abrahadabra as the union of 5 & 6.)
59 The yoni calling for the lingam as ovum, menstruum and desire.
60 Second and minute units; Machine cycles; Samekh; Greek X.
135
61 Nia; Ain; the negative positively knowing self.
64 I Ching patterns.
65 Mars Kamea sum.
66 Mystic number of the Opus Magnum and the Qlipoth.
67 The Womb containing the twins.
70 Biblical "Age" of Death; Ayin; Omicron.
71 A number of Binah, silence and nothingess.
72 The mystical Platonic duodecimal number whose powers and multiples produce
the distances between planets, diameters of orbits, etc. 72 is the Average human
life-span today.
73 The feminine aspect of Chokmah in his phallic function.
76 Halley's comet orbit in years.
78 Mezla, influence from above; total number of Tarots, Ego, Ape of Thoth,
Aiwass, the Oza (giants or monsters of creation).
80 Peh; pi.
81 Number of Tetragrams in the T'ai Hsan Ching; Talam; Moon; Witchcraft; Hecate.
82 Compound number; Angel of Venus, beloved object.
83 Consecration; highest form of love. Energy, freedom, amrita, aspiration.
87 Number of Lebenah (Frankincense), Aossic; chalice.
88 Khabs, "The Star."
89 A number of sin and taboo. Silence, of Black Magic.
90 Tzaddi.
91 Number of hairs (paths) in the Supernal Beard.
93 Thelema, Agape, Aiwass.
97 A number of Chesed as water and as father.
99 Ending of endings. Tithiane; Geburah's infernal abode.
100 Kephalos; Qoph; Rho.
108 A Platonic duodecimal number.
111 "Ain Sof Aur"; Kamea sum of the Sun; Number of Abra-Melin Servitors.
123 War, plague, pleasure, violation.
131 Samael, Satan, Pan, Baphomet.
156 Zion; Babalon; number of letters for Enochian tablet.
160 Ipo (name of the sun in a lower hemisphere); the number of Tonal in
Castaneda's world of phenomena (Nagual is to Tonal as Sirius to Ipo).
164 A compound number; Cleaving; profane, as opposed to sacred.
177 The Garden of Eden.
200 Resh, Sigma.
210 The Return; Joining to the Void's original 3 stages; 000.
216 Platonic duodecimal number.
217 Sigma-eta-theta, Seth; Star of Babalon (Scarlet Woman); Sirius; Deborah,
"the Bee" (Sekhet, goddess of intoxication and sexual passion).
222 Beyond Good and Evil; Whiteness.
256 Number of poisonous methods of astral projection.
260 The Mayan Tzolkin cycle of change. 260 = 13 x 20 (the mystic numbers); Kamea
sum of Mercury; Tiriel, the Intelligence of Mercury.
261 Meher Baba; Hriliu; Word of the Dove; "The Abomination of Desolation" (Stele
of Reveling).
280 RP, "Terror"; number of squares on the side of the vault containing the body
of Christian Rosenkreutz.
289 PTR, hole, void.
292 The "drug of death"; the raven (black bird of Set); Chozzar.
300 Shin, Greek tau.
305 Number of Yetzirah.
325 Bartzabel (spirit of Mars).
330 SOR (revolution); hurricane; tempest; circles of time.
333 "Connection to the Infinite"; Chaos: Shugal-Set, the front half of the
beast, which together with Choronzon or Chozzar, the back, makes 666.
342 Bsm.; Perfume; ambrosia.
353 Hermes.
360 Degrees in a circle (or zodiac).
365 Days in a year; number of Abraxas (Greek letters); number also of Mithras.
369 Kamea of Luna.
136
370 Left hand; Sabbatic Goat; Creation (as matter and spirit); Foundation.
389 Aossic (ancient extraterrestrial entity).
393 Blends the twin forces of Set and Horus (lightside and nightside of the Tree
of Life).
400 Tav.
406 Tav spelled out; also "Thou."
412 Romulus.
418 Abrahadabra.
442 Ends of the Earth.
444 "The Limits of Manifestation"; Al-Azif, Alhazred.
474 Gematria of Daath.
500 Phoenix; Kaph final; psi.
504 Figures in the formation of circles.
505 Kamea sum of 10 x 10.
511 Head.
535 Kteis.
555 Enlightenment.
600 Mem final; Chi.
612 Zeus.
640 Shamash; realm of the Sun; Mpitzth (horrible idol); Gematria of Cup of
Consolation; menstrual blood.
666 Number of Hatkariel; sum of the square of The Sun (i.e. the Antichrist).
Splendors of Being; Number of the Beast; Beast with two backs; Satanic Trinity
(Typhon, Apophis, Besz), opponent of Michael, Sorath..
671 Thora/Athor/Tharo.
700 Nun final; Upsilon.
733 "The White Head."
777 Magic, Creation. Dagon; Stauros.
789 Link between Aeon of Horus and Maat.
800 Peh final, Omega.
801 The sum of "Alpha and Omega"; also peristera, "a dove."
823 Sahasra; graven idol.
864 Platonic duodecimal number.
888 Metamorphosis, Iesous.
900 Tzaddi final.
999 Eternal Evolution (past, present, future); End of the World; Number of the
true Trinity; "Nymphe" or creatures such as the Dols or Dholes; Romulus
Hespaeria; Triple 9 Society; 999 C.E. is the year that Kukulkan (Quetzalcoatl)
died. The final resolution of 333 and 666.
1000 The Millenium; Rab-Aleph.
1060 The Tabernacle (Meshken).
1061 Sunset.
1296 Platonic duodecimal number.
1461 Sirius Cycle.
1728 Platonic duodecimal number.
1999 Date of Nostradamus' prediction of the Eschaton.
2000 Precessional Change; Year of the Dragon.
2012 Mayan date of "end of the world."
2167 Corrected precessional number.
3168 Important ancient mystical number used in construction.
5040 Another important ancient number.
12358 Fibonacci series.
26000 Great Year of the Egyptians.
36000 Ancient Chaldean Saros Cycle.
114048 Platonic number thought to have the best factors for making it the number
of the world-soul.
187740489 Nine to the ninth power.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NYARLATHOTEP
137
The faceless god of the Late Egyptians, as well as one of the Lovecraftian
Forgotten Ones. Nyarlathotep is the blind "messenger of the Gods," whose
tentaculary adorned cyclops-eye is "all-seeing." (He may also be completely
headless.) We will know when the Great Old Ones break through, because
Nyarlathotep will act as a siren, beginning his infernal howl out of the depths
of the darkness, and the howling will continue without pause forever after.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NYINGPO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
NYMPHOLEPSY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
O
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OAHSPE
Dr. John Ballou Newbrough's Kosmon Bible (copyrighted 1882), which he produced
by automatic typing during a half hour every dawn, over a span of 52 weeks. It
is purported to mean "Sky, Earth and Spirit" and lists Christ, Gabriel (founder
of Mohammedanism), Brahma and Budha (sic) as "The Four False Gods." Its full
title is A New Bible in The Words of Jehovih (sic) and his Angel Ambassadors. A
Sacred History of the Dominions of the Higher and Lower Heavens on the Earth for
the past 24,000 Years, being from the Submersion of the Continent of Pan in the
Pacific Ocean, commonly called the Flood or Deluge, to the Kosmon Era. Also, a
brief History of the Preceding 55,000 Years, Together with A Synopsis of the
Cosmogony of the Universe; The Creation of Planets; the Creation of Man; The
Unseen Worlds; the Labor and Glory of Gods and Goddesses in the Etherean
Heavens; with the New Commandments of Jehovih to Man of the Present Day. With
Revelations from the 2nd Resurrection, Formed in words in the 33rd Year of the
Kosmon Era.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OBEAH
Obi is the West Indian God of Evil and an "obeah" man or woman is a type of
sorcerer, proficient in Voodoo and other forms of magic.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OBELISK
Not just a phallic reminder, but the solar power of regeneration. Cirlot points
to its shape as similar to that of a sunbeam. Indeed, for the Egyptians, it is
Ra, himself. Its substance is the essence of earth (stone). But it is earth as
it reunites with heaven and embodies myths of "solar ascension amd of light as
the penetrating spirit." Its uprightness and pyramidicity also point to the
celestial impulse. (See PYRAMID.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
138
OCCULT
The occult today is in ruins because it has been prematurely made public. It is
a body of knowledge that is too fragile for those without wisdom. Because of
power being placed in the hands of the ignorant, the word "occult" has, largely
through the bullying of the Christians, falsely become a synonym for "evil." It
is for that very reason that the term was originally chosen. The occult has
always been a secret study that should never be made public. It deals with
sacred truth and the public, being composed mostly of fools, can only pervert
it.
At this point, however, we have no choice but to move forward with it, to try to
undo the harm by providing more light on the subject.
In general, occultism has three basic tenets: 1) man is in the process of
evolving to higher spiritual states of being; 2) the cosmos is energy; 3) there
are hierarchies of intelligence above and below human intelligence, which
control or influence the cosmos for good and evil, as human intelligence, of
course, in its own right also does.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ODE
From Greek hodos, "way." A method is "a way beyond." Examples: Ontode -- vehicle
of entification; Pathode -- disease carrier; Theode -- god-producer; Biode --
life object.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ODIN
The Norse God, who, like Hermes and Thoth, is, amongst other things, God of
Magic. He differs from Hermes and Thoth in also having been a God of self-
sacrifice. He hanged himself voluntarily on the Cosmic Tree, and for a much more
important purpose, long before Christ was supposed to have been crucified. For
the sake of wisdom, he paid his right eye (everyday vision) which was never
regained. He rules over Asgard and is called "the Allfather."
One of Odin's tricks was his ability to "knot" men's minds in battle so they
could not fight or, by the same token, to untie them, in order to provide them
with greater strength. He has two wolves called "Ravener" and "Greed" and two
ravens Hugin and Munin.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OLAM
Hebrew for "world" or "universe," but it derives from a root meaning "hidden" or
"occult."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OLANISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
139
Head of the 11th Century Sufic order of Hassan Sabah in Persia, whose assassins
used hashish to produce visions of paradise.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OL SONUF VAORESAJI
"I reign over ye." The first sentence of the first Key of the Enochian system.
(See AETHYRS.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
(Given in the classical order of the planets): Mars -- Phaleg; Sun -- Och; Venus
-- Hagith; Mercury -- Ophiel; Moon -- Phul; Saturn -- Arathor; Jupiter --
Bethor.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OMEN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OMNISCIENCE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ONTOLOGICAL ANARCHISM
Hakim Bey's term for overcoming Taoism's excessive passivity and withdrawal. He
feels that to be really different invites repression by the Establishment. One
should not think of oneself as a Liberal, but as a criminal.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OPHIDIAN CURRENT
OPHIR
The highest stage of refined gold; a land abundant in fine gold. Also the Hebrew
name for the element, "earth."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OPHITES
(From ophis, "serpent.") A Gnostic sect believing that Christ was the
incarnation of the serpent of paradise. Since the demiurge tried to prevent Adam
and Eve from acquiring knowledge, Christ as the serpent persuaded them to
disobey the evil creator and eat the fruit.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORDINARY CONSCIOUSNESS
We are accustomed to seeking special mental powers from the unconscious, the
deep psyche or some transcendental state induced by yoga or drugs. In fact, the
ordinary mind is itself unplumbed, 99% terra incognita. It can provide an
infinite number of undeveloped talents bordering on the supernatural.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORFFYREUS
Latinized name created for himself by Johann Bessler (1680-1745) by writing the
letters of the alphabet in a circle and selecting the 13th letter after each
letter in Bessler. He invented a perpetual-motion wheel which interested the
governments of England and Austria, who offered to buy it. But, when they
attempted to examine the axle in order to discern its secret, Orffyreus
destroyed it and vanished into the underground.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORGANISM
Whitehead's vision (as shared by Shaw in Back to Methuselah) that life pervades
nature, not as Bergson's "vitalism" did (by squeezing into matter osmotically
from outside), but by definition: Nature is alive: "bodies" are alive, and the
mind is more alive still. All nature (including inorganic matter) is a single
organism, one living body composed of biological cells (that is, events). This
is not hylism, on the contrary, but pneumism or spiritism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORGONE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORICHALCUM
141
"Mountain copper." The shiny metallic compound used in Atlantis, mentioned by
Plato, said to be comprised of bronze, gold and silver.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORTHRUS
(Greek Orthros, "the dawn in the west.") God Pluto's dog. In Kenneth Grant's
usage, he is the "Devil dog," or "hound of hell," the twin of Cerberus, the
three-headed watchdog at the gates of Hades. He has an Egyptian origin in the
monster Oms, the "hound of Typhon," guardian of the Judgment Hall. Cerberus's
three heads, no doubt, derive from the fact that Oms was a tri-partite mixture
of hippopotamus, crocodile and dog. In many cultures, the dog is a companion of
the dead in their crossing of the great Abyss and such is the function of the
dog in the zeroeth arcanum. (See HELL HOUND.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ORTHOLEXIA
Correct reading. For example, the phrase, "By their fruits shall ye know them,"
means not that we should judge others, but merely that we should see people as
the products of their accomplishments. Another example is "As ye sow, shall ye
reap," which means that the reaping is the sowing and occurs in the present, not
the future.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OSIRIS
King, judge and reincarnator of the dead (via the metamorphosis of earth). That
he is a "Dark God" is one of the ancient mysteries. One of his aspects is the
jackal god of the dead, Anubis. With Set he completes the universal pair of
conflicting brothers, representing culture and freedom. It is important to
realize that these things take place away from the sun. For these and other
reasons, Osiris is generally thought of as the God of "Black Magic" and "The
Occult," who has been cut up into many pieces and buried (i.e., "hidden"). Only
Isis is able to put him back together again.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
O.T.O.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OXYOPIA
Keen eyesight.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
OZ
A full statement of Thelemic law. See Crowley's Liber 77 (77 being the number of
Oz). It is a Semitic root for "strength." Liber Oz was printed originally in
1942 and deals with Thelemic politics. During the creation, monsters from Unive
rse B were irresponsibly unleashed, referred to in the Bible as Nefilim,
"Giants" (literally, "fallen ones"). Says K. Grant, "The generic name for them
is Oza, [of numerical value] 78, [the value] of Aiwass and of the influence from
Kether (Mezla). The Oz is the entity that casts its monstrous and ape-like
shadow over The Magician in Crowley's design of the Tarot Pack (Atu II, ascribed
to Mercury and hence the Ape of Thoth)." All manifestation is illusion,
including the words of creation, and the Dog-Headed Ape mocks even the languages
of the Gods. Personal revelations indicate that Oz is the "home of the Beast-
Doom" (Typhon as shown on the Tenth Enigma of the Book of T), i.e., the lowest
circle of Hell, Hades.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
P
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PAGAN HOLIDAYS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PALINDROME
A phrase that runs the same backward as forward, e.g., Miser saturni tu sumus ut
in rutas resim or En giro torte sol ciclos et rotor igne, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PALINGENESIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PANDEMOPLASMODIUM
143
The ultimate fusion of the entire earth into one giant mass of writhing human
flesh with no remaining space for anything but humanity drowning in itself and
its waste products.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PANGENESIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PANSPERMIA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PANTACLE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PANTHEISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PARACELSUS
The famous 16th Century physician and alchemist who taught the maxim, "As above,
so below." Born in Einsiedeln, Switzerland, 1493, the full glory of his name was
Philippus Aureolus Theophrastus Bombastus von Hohenheim. He taught (before the
word was invented) that man is "hologram" of the universe -- the macrocosm
dwells within the microcosm. His medicine was based on the observation that
health requires the proper balance of sulphur, salt and mercury (male, neutral,
female). His understanding was that alchemy was not chemistry so much as an
inner human process, yet his pharmacology is still amazing and effective and he
is credited with having discovered nitrogen (azote). The secret of the lapis
philosophorum was said to have been conferred on him by Solomon of Trismosin.
Disease, according to Paracelsus was caused by the separation of man's three
elements (sulphur, salt and mercury) from Universe.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PARACLETE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PARALEIPSIS
145
A figure by which one fixes attention by saying one will not speak about a
certain matter and then goes on to do so.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PARASEMIOTIC SYMBOL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PARFAXITAS
Grant's sentinel of the 27th tunnel. The "Red Temple." Its sickness is the
festering arising from wounds.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PAROUSIA
The 2nd Coming (of X). The return of Christ is, as it was in the beginning, the
return of the Christ consciousness -- for there is no historical Christ,
(unlike, let us say Thoth or Hermes). Minions of the historical Church will wait
in vain as the Xtian Age of Pisces draws to an end at last with nary a glimmer
of suburban yuppie Jesus in tennis shoes and pink jogging shorts. Technically,
in eternal terms, the three "days" of Christ's death are eons. The first day was
the day of his crucifixion, yesterday, which took place 2000 years ago. The
second day is the entire span of time since then, taken as a single day. During
all this day, Christ has been in Hell. The third day is the millennium,
tomorrow, when he will "rise" up out of Hell. In fact, the real meaning of
Parousia (in Greek) is a "remaining beside" and really has nothing to do with
"coming back" at all.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PATAPHYSICS
The invention of late 19th Century French humorist, Alfred Jarry, which he
defined as follows:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PATHWAY XI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PAZUZU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
149
PEGASUS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PELICAN
Alchemical symbol for the stage known as mortificatio, the breaking open of the
outer shell to reveal the inner man. As the mother pelican was believed to feed
her young from blood pecked from her own breast, she is also sometimes used as a
general symbol of self- sacrifice.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PENETRALIA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PENTACLE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PERICHORESIS
The word is Greek, as you might imagine: peri "around" + choreio "dance." But
for the Greeks "dancing" wasn't the aimless shuffling we do. It was more like
ballet. "Choreography" is a lot closer to the idea -- in which particular
movements are carefully planned and executed. Travel from one dimension to
another occurs simultaneously on all levels of reality. We travel in and out of
the astral during sleep every night and think nothing of it. And, as you know,
when the shaman interfaces with the earth by taking narcotic mushrooms or cacti
into his system, he's moving deliberately and consciously between universes.
Parallel worlds stretch horizontally from sinister to dexter, or rather, from
increasing shades of darkness to increasing degrees of light. Beings entering
from the darkside are perceived by us not as merely ignorant but as demonic,
whereas the wisdom of the beings from the lightside stands so far beyond our
recognition that we see them simply as angelic beings. Depending on the level of
reality that we happen to occupy, the dark and light worlds are perceived as
150
more or less similar to the world we currently inhabit. On some levels of
reality, the transfiguration is reversed and we perceive them as inhabiting
regions above and below a horizontal plane of reality that stretches into
inaccessible temporal limits of Past and Future. In such a world, reality is a
given that is perceived as revealing itself only at such Past and Future
vanishing points -- Alpha and Omega.
Everywhere horizontal parallel plane meets vertical parallel levels and an Aeon
is established, symbolized by a cross. If the cross, however is not
circumscribed by a circle (the familiar symbol of cross in circle, representing
"earth"), there is no cohesion and the center does not hold. The so-called
"extremes," in fact, are not extremes at all, but merely their own opposites in
a spinning circle.
Because of the nature of infinity, we have to recognize that we may never stand
at any of the four extremities, but always only at the exact center of the
omniverse.
Notice also that in any formal religious painting, the god or saint is always
placed in the exact center. If he is raised too high from the center, the lower
world is given undue importance and power, because, after all, in completely
"secular" pictures, the God has been raised so high as to have been left out of
the picture altogether! Placing the God too far down divests him of his divinity
because his intensity looks, on our level, simply grotesque. Likewise, if the
God is placed too far to the left or right, an imbalance is also created.
Thus, uncircumscribed, the ends of the cross stretch unchecked into the infinite
four directions and an uncontrollable wickedness is set forth into all
manifestations. Without the "earthing" of the cross, there is no manifestation.
The extremities lead only into infinite "otherness" and delusion. It is the
inner being at the solar plexus that is the heart of the universe. When we nail
(i.e., Christianize) the higher spirit of man to an ancient quadratic event, the
center is blocked and closed forever. Moreover, the center has been locked in
the past, away from the Eternal Now. Until the nail (Xtianity) has been pulled
out, no further evolution is possible and Death will prevail.
The way out is toward the central, innermost point.
The parallel world-planes are accessible at all times. We move in and out of
them constantly, but are mostly unaware of having done so. Occasionally we get
the feeling that "things are suddenly different" or that "something is about to
happen" and that means we've inadvertently stepped into a new probable world
that is much different from the ones we've hitherto occupied. You can move back
into the world you've just left, only if you do so at once.
Whatever can be imagined, exists, will exist or has existed. Whatever has
existed or will exist continues to exist now because time is one of the four
real dimensions of things. Alongside this Reality there are an infinite number
of co-existent realities of equal "solidity" and "substance." There are also an
infinite number of "probable" realities and an infinite number of "possible"
worlds. A moment's reflection will show that if this is so, then, obviously,
available access to them must not be merely possible, but inevitable. Jane
Robert's Seth describes the infinite "probable worlds" stretching out in either
direction from this one. The closest ones being hardly distinguishable from
this, as we progress outward, the probable worlds become stranger, increasingly
incomprehensible and frighteningly unpredictable. In the fifth dimensional
world, four dimensional objects have their own much more complete and solid
"substance" which we cannot perceive so long as we inhabit lower planes of
being.
You can, however, willingly and deliberately get up and walk from this world
into the nearest adjacency and from there to the next, and the next. The only
problem is that you're playing roulette. There's no way of telling what kind of
world you are moving into.
If you are seeking to avoid some trouble in this world, be advised that things
could be a lot worse in the world next door. Moreover, if you leave unsolved
problem behind, your karma will continue to take you back there in future lives
until eventually you are forced to solve them. On top of that, if you leave
muddy footprints behind you as you run through world after world, you'll have
added onto your present karma the extra burden of going back to mop them up.
151
Actual entrance/exit sites are a matter of intuitive perception. Dimensional
doorways are not likely, for instance, to be found in your living room. They
need to be places you've never crossed before (except as interdimensional
thresholds). It's best to look for two pillars to pass between -- a couple of
tall trees in a forest or park make excellent pillars. The more difficult the
access the better. And the direction and angle of entrance are crucial. Select a
"picture" framed by the trees as most nearly representing the world you want to
leave behind you and before you a picture of what intuitively or esthetically
looks to be an improvement of that. Make sure that nothing passes across your
line of vision as you are actually walking through. If necessary, keep your eyes
closed or look down at your feet.
At first the difference between adjacent worlds is scarcely discernible.
Variations only become immediately evident at some distance. But if you are
observant, you will eventually begin to notice tiny, subtle changes for the
better (or worse). By the time these changes become evident, it's already too
late to go back where you came from. The metaphors of artistic symbolism,
religion and magic can also assist in perichoretic travel. With the enhanced
ability to will and to imagine, the human mind can perceive parts of alternate
realities with increasing clarity and may begin to see how to transform the
reality we normally inhabit. In fact, so many are the pathways to alternate
experience, it's a wonder anyone still believes that reality has but a single
face!
There is, to be sure, ultimately only the One Plenum in which everything else
transpires, but that sphere transcends experience in the Void of Nirvana.
Although, as we've seen above, there are relatively easy methods of interplanary
travel (between planes), the ability to discover significant doorways into
alternate dimensions, advanced perichoresis, not only requires an out-of-the-
ordinary state of consciousness, but is a difficult technique in its own right,
mastered properly only by experienced shamans. For instance, travel through time
in the past requires us to move "forward" (i.e., towards the Beginning of Time)
simply by ignoring vast areas of experience and being -- as we also do in the
present -- in order to maintain a strict continuity of our own. Travel from the
future (i.e., the End of Time), however, even though employing the same
declination, creates an ever-thickening wall behind us, preventing all
possibility of return to the starting point.
Kenneth Grant (Outside the Circles of Time) provides us with insights into the
sexual avenue of interdimensional perichoresis and at the same time describes
the procedure for creating a "moonchild." In his system, the door to our world
opens inward in order for us to receive extratellurian immigrants.
Bipolar human sexuality, explains Grant, parallels cosmogenesis and the sacred
void corresponds to the female vagina. Everything comes out of and falls back
into this same eternal darkness. The creative light is sucked into its
bottomless depths where it is swallowed up by vampiric blackness. Therefore, the
doorway to the vacuum or zero of space is a priestess who has been chosen for
her "master of the art of dream control." By allowing herself to become a mirror
of impression-reception, she is able to generate illusions, "for all form is
fantasy, and exists only in the dreaming mirror of the mind."
A material looking glass is placed above her, slanted to receive the starlight.
Now, by her psychic ability she can project whatever star morph the magician
requires onto the looking glass. A second mirror, creating an infinite
regression reflection is placed 11 feet away, eleven being the number of the
famous 11th Pathway of Black Magic. The circle of Daath is the corresponding
doorway in the Qabalah.
Thereupon the priest uses his penis as the intergalactic conduit of the astro-
seminal energy. His vibrations and invocations encourage the dream-manipulating
priestess to focus the desired star-morph entity onto the mirrors. In the
ultimate orgasm of priest, priestess and dream-entity, the eldolon rises briefly
to life and erupts from the mirror as its starseed transmission runs down from
the star to impregnate her. The zygote achieved by this cosmocopulation is a
unique blend of human and extraterrestrial "genes."
According to most students, monstrous beings invisible to ordinary consciousness
are entering our universe in unprecedented numbers, through this same
152
interdimensional sexual doorway. (Apparently our time is a vector of unique
significance.) The fantasy film, Ghostbusters, was a facetious rendering of this
understanding, but revealed a good deal more than most viewers realized. Kenneth
Grant teaches a heterosexual tantrism by which one may ride out again through
the same door on the back of one of these demonic beasts and thereby escape. He
calls this, again, the 11th Pathway. Others propose that there are homosexual
and even solitary practices what serve this purpose equally well.
Sex and death are the two most common and well-known methods of conveyance
between worlds, but such exclusively Scorpionic merkabahs are by no means the
only ones. All of these methods follow the horizontal direction of planes to
left and right, from darkness into light, or vice versa. There is also travel in
the vertical direction from layers of reality and consciousness above and below.
These cris-crossing horizontal and vertical planes endlessly extend out and
recede into the vastnesses. Some of the planes are commonly thought, by the
average person, to be "schizophrenic" because they appear to leave the traveller
suspended in his "own little world." But such planes are of great importance to
the magician or yogin. Reality, we must understand, is entirely a matter of the
manipulation of illusion. The teacher, Gurdjieff, once pointed out that there is
only one thing in the entire universe, but it is repeated endlessly in order to
provide the illusion of "difference." Even chemistry and physics bear this out.
The difference between each element is simply a difference in the number of
their atomic electrons: Hydrogen 1, Helium 2, Lithium 3...
Some writers believe that there are denizens of other dimensions who use various
perichoretic chariots that resemble the astral projections of those whose time
and locality they visit. For Ezekiel and Daniel it was a fiery wheel bearing the
tetramorph. For the Dogons it was a star ship. For our great grandfathers in the
19th Century it was frequently an airship. But they aren't just psychic
experiences, say the witnesses, ufo's leave evidence behind ... a burned-out
circle on the lawn, a map with indecipherable writing, MIBs, etc.
My own interdimensional visits to "the Other Side" have been neither A.D.E.'s
nor OOBE's. They have occurred either through true-dreaming or by psychotropic
methods, i.e., strictly via astral travel. In all, I have several times visited
the "conventional" Astral Plane -- or abode of the (after-dead) spirits, three
or four times encountered higher beings (although only at a distance), dwelt in
the All-Consciousness of All-Phyla and once visited a previous time. Lately I
have begun experimenting with ordinary consciousness as a routine means of
perichoresis. The occult path I've travelled (until now) has always been the
lonely one of the hermit. The beings I've encountered have been the traditional
custodians of the pathways, that is to say, those archetypes hovering somewhere
between being and non-being. Else they comprise the angels, Gods and daimones of
pantheons we already know. But I have increasingly come under the purview of
something more important: the existence of what seems to be an infinite number
of Eternal Doorways between worlds. These doorways are available to us, of
course, under very special circumstances -- that is to say, in altered psychic
states lying clearly outside normal consciousness: Yoga, Tantra, sex magic,
primitive rites of passage, repetitive rhythms (micro-events), sensory
deprivation or stimulation, pain, extreme trauma, trance, all the multifarious
REM/sleep/hypnotic states, rushes of adrenaline or fatigue intoxication,
epilepsy, metamorphic anomaly, drug intoxication, illness, psychosis proper,
thanatolepsy and death. (See SOLIPSISM.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PERPLEXED
Crowley's last words were, "I am perplexed." Many have speculated idly as to
what that meant, but it seems merely to derive, as Aurora Borealis, January '87
suggests, from the final portion of Crowley's pet project, the Tao Teh King:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PEYOTL
The Huichol religious cactus of inner discovery. About a dozen buttons are
necessary for the visions, though over-dosages can occur at any level.
(Mescaline is one of the distilled ingredients.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHALLUS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHARZUPH
154
The angel of fornication.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHEONISME
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHILOSOPHER'S STONE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHILOTANUS
Demon that leads men into pederasty, A minion of Belial, according to Baskin.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHOSTER
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHOTON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHREN
The perceiving mind (as opposed to nous, the thinking mind): Anthropophrenon --
The Racial Mind; Aphrenia -- Mindlessness; cosmophrenosis -- Cosmic
Consciousness; Encephalophrenic -- Brain-Centered; Entomophrene -- A Hive
155
Entity; Geophrenon -- Whole Earth Consciousness; Hylophrenic -- Matter
Conscious; Idiophrene -- An Individual Mind; Metaphrenosis -- Mind Evolution;
Metatheophrenic -- Beyond God-Mind; Protophrenon -- Original Mind Being;
Theriophrenic -- Animal Conscious; Teleophrenon -- Ultimate Mind.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PHRYGIAN CAP
Conical cap with top turned forward. It is red to signify circumcision and is
the origin of the bishop's mitre and the Rosicrucians' hat.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Count Giovanni PDM (1463-1494), Italian philosopher and Cabalist. Studied with
Raymond Lully. Knew Greek, Latin, Hebrew, Chaldean and Arabic. Wrote Strige, a
book about witches, Heptaplus and a qabalistic version of Genesis. His
Conclusiones, Philosophicae, cabalisticae et theologicae was posthumously
published in 1495. Amongst these, his most important Hermetic statement was:
"Magicam operari non est aliud quam maritare mundum." Also, "As the wheel
turneth, so increaseth its circumference by as much."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PIEZOELECTRIC
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PISCES
(Also see FISH.) The dual sign of Past and Future, Flood followed by resurgence.
The ending precessional Age that began with the invitation to join Christ and
leave the Arietian Age behind ("Come, I will make you fishers of men...") Pisces
is the sign of suffering, governing the 12th house of incarcerations,
restrictions and bondage -- hospitals, nunneries, prisons, etc. It is ruled by
Neptune, poisons, liquids and narcotics. Pisces always, in some way, manages to
hobble the native so that his progress is crippled either by external or
internal conditions.
Some well known Pisceans include: Ernest Renan, Frederic Chopin, Elizabeth
Taylor, George Washington, Patty Hearst, Schopenhauer, Giuleta Masina, Meher
Baba, Anthony Burgess, Jack Kerouac, B.F. Skinner, Ibsen, Nijinski, Einstein,
Ravel, Elizabeth Barret Browning, Jean Harlow, Queen Mary I, Cyrano de Bergerac,
Claire Trevor, L. Ron Hubbard.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PISTIS SOPHIA
(Lit. "Faith-Wisdom.") The great Gnostic text from Egypt discovered and
translated from the Coptic in the 19th Century. Deals with the banishment of
Sophia to the material sphere.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
156
PITRIS
"Fathers." Superior lunar and solar beings who assisted in our evolution.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PLANES
The 7 Hindu planes of being: Rupa -- The Body; Prana-Jiva -- Vitality; Linga-
Sarira -- Astral Body; Kama-Rupa -- Animal Soul; Manas -- Human Soul; Buddhi --
Spiritual Soul; Atma -- Divine Selfhood.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PLASMATE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PLENUM
Material universe.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PLEROMA
In Gnosticism, divine being, the Universal Soul, including all aeons which
emanate from it. Hence, it is a realm of pure light and the abode of all the
Gods.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PLOTINUS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PLUTO
The planet that rules Scorpio, the sign of Mystery, and where it is located from
1984 to 1996. It moves backward into the past, displacing death forward. Amongst
other things, Pluto affects those changes on earth that come after the death of
those who have struggled against them. Pluto isn't just the underground, it's
one's own "underground."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
POPUL VUH
157
(Lit. "Book of Written Leaves.") The sacred book of the Quich’ Mayans, divided
into the "Creation" and the "War Between the Gods and the Giants."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PORTA LUCIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
POSITIVE THINKING
The mistaken belief that all difficulties will vanish if we simply ignore them.
To ignore the shadows of things is to drift inexorably into carelessness and
torpor.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
POST-APOCALYPTIC
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PRACTICALITY/PRAGMATISM
The things that most make life worth living are the things least necessary for
continued existence. No perfect thing or priceless thing is of any practical or
pragmatic use whatsoever: Virtue, Love, Happiness, Art, Philosophy, Gold, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PRALAYA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PREMISE
This is the flawing point of logic. Premises are the bedrock upon which logic is
based. They are not themselves subject to logical proof, however, hence their
validity is always questionable. From an old, anonymous BBS message: in
primitive healing, sacred mustard seeds are thrown in the face of sickness, but
"if the seeds are themselves infected..."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PRIAPUS
This was found in an obscure book, privately printed in 1906 {The Masculine
Cross - author unknown}. The author goes on to describe circumcision, male and
female, and also a practice in Dahomey described as Prolongatio, videlicet,
artificialis labiorum pundendi, capellae mamillis simillima. (the prolongation
artificially of the labia so as to resemble goat teats!). There is a companian
volume, entitled Ophiolatreia, as well as other volumes (Tree Worship, Flowers &
Fire, Phallic Worship).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PROBE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PROMETHEUS
His name means "forethought." The theft of fire for the benefit of man, despite
the hideous punishment meted out for that crime is a mark of sublime courage and
represents the kind of sacrifice that only a semi-divine being is capable of.
Fire, of course, is technology, and whether Prometheus' sacrifice was justified
is still a question.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PROPAGANDA
Propaganda serves two purposes. It dupes the unsophisticated and it keeps those
busy who recognize it for what it is. Enemies of propaganda are effectively
neutralized by forcing them to deal with the propaganda first. Undoing the
deleterious effects of propaganda takes time and energy away from the
achievement of legitimate goals.
"People usually require something that they will accept as proof before they
incorporate radical changes of view. They ask for miracles (Religious, Political
or Economic), masterpieces of art, conclusive experiments and so on. Political
groups and organized religion reject this request and resort to the argument of
faith. To protect yourself from this form of intellectual and spiritual
imperialism, critical analysis is a valid weapon."
159
-- Druid Spechtold
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PSI-GUERILLA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PSILANTHROPISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PSYCHISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PSYCHOPANNYCHISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PSYCHOPOMPOS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PYRAMID
Pyramids dating back as far as 6000 years ago encircle the globe in England,
Mexico, North America, Polynesia, China, the Himalayas, etc. Some believe them
to represent the ancient world's equivalent of a world-wide cargo cult whose
temples atop them catered to fearsome gods from outer space. The symbolism of
the pyramid is that of a tree in which, unlike Darwinism, evolution proceeds
downwards, with the root in heaven and the branches extending into deeper and
deeper concretizations and complexities of matter. The "eye in the pyramid" is
merely the awakening of consciousness in the midst of the descent into matter.
"Light in extension" is the hope of enlightening the base of the pyramid.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PYRAMID POWER
160
(Also cone headgear). In mimetic magic the pyramid serves as a parallel funnel
or horn to draw down the powers of the heavens onto all that which lies inside
or under it. Its base is a perfect square, representing the earth and its four
corners - or a circle, deriving from infinity, the point.
The cone is nearly as effective as the pyramid, so a hat in the shape of a cone
also has beneficial effects on the wearer, curing headaches, stress and even
slow-healing head-wounds. The effects of a cone device, as far as I know, have
not been compared to those produced by Reich's Orgone box.
In contemporary "pyramid power" theory, the convection of the cosmic energy
derives from its inversion and the subsequent compression (like laser) of the
lines of force - as images are similarly inverted by a lens. Think of an
hourglass or how the sun's rays stream out like a cone through a small opening
in the clouds. It has been observed that concentration is increased and a sense
of well-being occurs amongst subjects placed under a tent pyramid or cone device
for the head. Even 10 or 15 minutes under the pyramid can increase energy,
intelligence, concentration, self-confidence, optimism, sense of well-being,
etc.
The tent pyramid is an attempt to realign imbalanced centers, just as in olden
days the dunce or "thinking cap" was administered by impatient teachers in an
effort to quieten children and heighten their attentionality. It was intended to
help the child regain control of his center. For the same reason the conical hat
or hood was forced upon criminals and heretics in a final stab at restoring them
before their punishment or sacrifice. We think of wizards, warlocks and
alchemists wearing these conical devices chiefly as physical enhancers (to make
them appear taller than normal people), but obviously, their actual purpose was
to increase not their stature but their powers of concentration. Witches' hats
are defective, because they have brims that deflect the celestial currents. In
very ancient times priests and kings wore head dresses bearing legends and
symbols of their rank. These legends could serve as mantras as well, to further
enhance the restorative powers of such devices.
The materials (metal, stone, glass, wood) seem much less important than the
shape itself, although reason would suggest that the desired effects would also
be assisted by the proper material: metal for sealing, stone for durability,
glass for transparency, wood for organic purposes. But it seems that the power
lines move in the desired directions regardless of the material. The results of
experiments involving keeping meat fresh or razor blades sharp under pyramids
seem rather suspect, but it must be borne in mind that experimental data need
not invariably lead us to random or impractical conclusions in order to honor
their authenticity. Indeed, anyone can say anything about reality, including
that it is random or meaningless.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
PYTHAGORAS
Greek philosopher, born circa 572 B.C. on the island of Samos. Taught
mathematics, reincarnation, meditation, psychic immortality, the "music of the
spheres" which related celestial orbits to the musical scale, vegetarianism and
a system of geometric archetypy. His religious community and school in Crotona,
Italy lasted his lifetime and Pythagorean societies continued well after his
death into the 3rd Century, based on the original (ipse dixit) teachings. It is
important to remember, however, that Pythagoras himself separated his own
teachings into "exoteric" and "esoteric."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Q
------------------------------------------------------------------------
161
QA'ABA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
QABALAH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
QLIPHOTH/QLIPPOTH
Lit. "shells" (singular: qliphah). Shades of the dead whose names appear in the
books of Dyzan or Thoth, or the Book of the Law (AL). They may contain formulae
of magical powers. RAW calls them "souls of those who died insane... the tulpas
of Tibet... avatars of Coyote, the American Indian prankster-god." RAW also
identifies them with the Celtic "little people" or faeries. Some of the twenty-
two qliphotic entities of the Black Tarot, as envisioned by Grant, are defined
herein under separate entries, although strictly speaking, the qlippoth are the
names of the guardians of the tunnels, not the tunnels themselves.
To understand the qliphothic atus fully and to do them justice can be more
deleterious to the artist or researcher than one might suspect. Conceivably,
such complete understanding could result in the destruction of the ego without
restoration in the Oversoul and therefore lead to actual madness. Dealing with
the Qliphoth is the psychic equivalent of working with toxic wastes, dangerous
animals or high voltage wires.
To invoke any force is to invoke automatically its opposite as well. In the more
conventional sense, qliphoth are negative cosmic energies equating with the ten
positive Sephiroth (e.g., Lilith is the evil counterpart of Malkuth). All
positive aspects of divinity have their "excremental" sides, or demons:
Beelzebub, Satanas, etc. The difference between metamorphosis and excretion is
thinner than you might guess. From the universal lexicon:
In the waning years of Alchemy, occultists were fond of saying that the
Philosopher's Stone was "that which all men despise" -- and this in turn led the
162
puffers to experiment with various types of excrement in order to see if that
substance, perchance, could possibly yield the Secret of the Ages, since nothing
so far had succeeded in doing so. And of course all such experiments
accomplished was to mark the nadir of human folly.
What is this word "excrement", after all? It's from Latin, excernere, "to
separate." It is a separation, a peeling away, as when we peel away a scab or a
blister, making it no longer a part of ourselves. German scheiden/schieden
(divide, separate, divorce) is simply another form of the word Scheisse (Fr.
chier, Engl. shit) or its Greek equivalent schizo, "to split."
Latin cutis (skin), we should notice, first of all, is a cognate of Greek skatos
(dung). Like the snake, what we throw away begins with the "skin" -- a word
which probably represents a form of one of the universal roots. Compare Peruvian
kina (the bark, or tree peeling, whence we get quinine) and Malay sisek (fish
scales). Perhaps even the Austrian Kakadu word, kŠngir meaning "skin" is
distantly related. At any rate, kŠngir is almost certainly the origin of
"kangaroo," particularly since the Australian Warramunga word, nguru, meant
"foreskin." These two are clearly connected and the marsupial associations are
plain enough.
The puffers didn't understand that excrement isn't exactly what all men despise.
Or to be more precise, what matters isn't so much what is discarded and thrown
away, but the value we place on the kept, as opposed to the trash. That faulty
decision itself is where the problem lies. In fact, the Finnish proverb: Kulta
kultainen v“lkkya roskatta, "gold glitters in what is thrown away", is a
sentiment well understood by shamans, witches and other marginal people, who are
drawn to the rubbish heaps and middens, much as the money-vultures circle the
stock market.
What all men despise is "that out there," that is to say, the world. And they
try incessantly to dissociate themselves from it. Yet, obviously, if we really
were one with the world, then we'd have in hand "the universal solvent," we'd
have immortality because the world is immortal. In the world's all-powerful
Nature is the very secret of turning lead into gold. Instead man tries
desperately to throw out everything that is not self.
Part of the problem is that the verb "to be" has two meanings (as in Spanish):
one is an expression of permanent identity or equivalence to something else and
the other an expression of a changing, on-going process. When we accept the
error that we are not gods, we cease all self-examination, self-disciplines and
self-improvement. We define god as an embodiment of "pefection" (or completion)
instead of as the avenue of evolution and becoming. Only idols are perfect. Not
even Odin ever thought of himself as perfect: he had to make many sacrifices in
order to gain wisdom. Ditto Osiris, who was so far from being "together" that he
was chopped up into little pieces. Granted, Jehovah is perfect, or thinks He is,
but He is also a difficult God to respect, for that same reason. When you say we
are not gods, you mean we are not idols. But an idol is precisely what modern
man has made of himself. He worships himself, even though gods never worship
themselves. Obviously, they don't have to. Only man worships himself, though not
really as a god or potential god. He worships himself just as he is: as a
fatted, golden pig wearing Gucci shoes.
The reason people push gods "outside" is the same reason they shove everything
else outside, separating everything and calling it evil because it is unwanted.
Anything which is not self, including the planet earth, is felt to be of no real
value. In fact, matter is simply unwanted "dirt." Most of the self is thrown
away, at least that part of the self which demands the most work or struggle.
All that may remain is the momentary gratification of physical need: food,
drink, sex, rest, entertainment. To put a god into that strait-jacket, even a
minor one, is to disrupt the routine, to interfere with the direct line of ice
cream to mouth. Besides, the puffing up of an imaginary personal ego is a
thousand times easier than the expression of difficult, real Divinity. Standing
far enough away from the world empowers objectivity to serve as the perfect
defense of the ego. Here ego cannot be challenged and "Science" and "Reason"
become the last refuges of Subjective Solipsism.
In the Qabalah this peeling away of the self, this separation or "excrement" is
called a Qlipha (pl. qlipphoth). The qliphoth are the negative personifications.
163
All the expressions of Divinity have their "qlipphoth": Samael, Beelzebub,
Satanas, etc., as we've said. And, in truth, these are what people actually bow
down to: these idols that are made up out of excrement. Divinity that lies
outside of self is not divinity.
In contemporary Occidental man's desperate struggle to separate himself we would
do well to remember Alan Watts' comparison of the self to an onion. You can peel
and peel until there is nothing left.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
QUATERNITY
The sacred "fourness," which is the magical obsession. There are four very
powerful things that all entities can do. They can:
The secret of magic is nothing more nor less than the absolute understanding of
the meaning of the four elements. The sorcerer calls them "Ritual, Invocation,
Chaos and Contagion," the alchemist calls them Sulfur, Salt, Mercury and Azoth,
the physicist calls them Time, Space, Matter and Energy. But whatever we call
the terms, every reality is divided into the same four parts.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
QULIELFI
The guardian of the 29th path of the reverse Tree, corresponding to The Moon. It
is called the path of the leapers (hence the connection to Universe B). The
magic, says Grant, is "casting illusions and bewitchments generally."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
QURAYSH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
R
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RA
First of the Gods in the Egyptian pantheon. Sometimes hawk-headed, like Horus.
(See ISIS.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RA
164
Ancient extraterrestrial entity channeled by Don Elkins from 1962 to 1984 (when
Elkins died). Ra was a "sixth density social memory complex" who visited Egypt
11,000 years ago by ufo.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RAFLIFU
The guardian of the 30th dark tunnel, corresponding to The Sun. Its magic is the
power to acquire gold and wealth. The disease is wasting sickness.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RAT
The female form of "Ra" (Mother of Geb, Nut, Shu and Tefnut).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
REALITY
"Reality" is illusion only in the sense that there is more than one version. You
can alter this aeon's reality, but there are several million separate Kalpic
realities that are also primed for re-adjustment.
Reality does not exist apart from you and me. Although it seems to retain a
changeless nature, that is merely the illusory consensus which our society
clings to. And of course, our perceptions define reality, as do history and
tradition, but we can also alter reality by physical, mental & arcane means.
There are the perceptionless reality systems, after all (see below). The
psychedelics have also played a tremendous role in changing collective reality,
that despite the built-in limitation that all psychedelics can do is restructure
ephemeral, subjective consciousness on society's lowest, least influential
levels.
Ordinary, right-eyed, aeonic reality depends on our senses, but there are
realities interwoven through this consensus that do not derive from the bodily
senses, in which (as far as our waking minds are concerned) we act unconsciously
-- but deliberately. Sense reality, for all its unreliability, is not very
flexible, hence it serves as the final testing field (as well as rubbish heap)
of substance. Usually our work in the separate realities is more important than
our work in "this" one. As for using one's mental expectations as a reality-set,
that would apply strictly to the superzeroeth R-Levels.
Reality is "Non-being," and according to Grant: "...withdraws as the Principle
of Consciousness recedes and returns to the point of original absence."
Gurdjieff describes the following while under the influence of an anomalous
substance: "I perceived directly now that everything in the universe was
directly connected, and that moreover these forms were all connected just
because they were all one and the same, repeated to provide the illusion of
complexity. When presented with such a multiplicity of images, one can infuse
them with differences sufficient to completely deceive oneself even though
behind it all, one knows and understands the truth." And then, as the ground
began to give way under him, he thought, "Everything, as soon as it is formed,
flows into infinity in which it is transformed into the void and reformed as a
new formation, which in turn is instantly swallowed."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
165
REALITY ALTERATION
First of all, discounting ESP, we must never forget that thought alone, no
matter how powerful or dazzling, cannot change reality. Only the body can change
reality -- through physical means. On the everyday level of realty-alteration we
simply exercise the passive power of choice: emphasizing certain things that
present themselves, while minimizing others. But even this, the most basic of
natural powers, has psionic repercussions and occult meanings.
Realty alteration by M/magic(k)al means can be accomplished with or without
drugs or rituals, i.e., by the exercise of the Imagination and the Will. Drugs
enhance the Imagination and ritual enhances the Will, although for the Adept
such artificial enhancements are no longer always necessary.
The secret to the physical change of Reality is the M/magic(k) of the moment and
the desperation of need. We also call this "Spontaneity." Being caught in a lie,
for instance, will provide you with a crash course in stagecraft. If it's
practice that makes perfect, then it's practice of invention that makes practice
unnecessary. Therefore, learn the art of invention.
It's not necessary to memorize a set of rules. Every day is a new day -- every
job is a new job. And we come to all things with a brand new mind. If there are
principles to be grasped, they are vague and cover only certain rudimentary
skills learned in childhood (such as riding congruencies and swallowing
labyrinths). At the same time, since everything is the same thing, there is but
one endless repetition in infinite regression -- and since everything is also
unique, nothing can be counted, except One... One... One... One...
The key to transformation of the world is to move vertically from lower to
higher levels of consciousness. As we rise, we do less and less "magic" because
reality becomes more and more accessible to negentropic direct action of the
Will. As we move downward towards material reality, we require more rigid
technoscientific control and more onerous practical labor because we are dealing
with harder and harder crystallizations. Eventually we reach the ultimate
entropy of matter/energy, wherein no further change is possible because
everything is already chaotically changing. Since we stand at some midway point,
we are in a state of eternal metamorphosis. Reality, I'm bound to say, is also
changed passively and unconsciously, not just by our gross manipulations,
hackings, intentions, misunderstandings, negligences and mesmerisms. It is also
changed by our simplest perceptions. When we poke at the skin of a pachyderm, it
tightens. We must acknowledge that there are (from the photonic standpoint) two
modes of reality, the subluminal (slower than light) universe and the
superluminal universe (FTL). We are mostly involved with the subluminal.
Since anything is true, let's say that the dynamics of Reality are infinitely
subtle. Everything emits its own unique radiation in holomovement with the
potentiating space-grid of the reality-level that we happen to occupy. When a
photon bounces off such a "wavicle," it registers the wavicle's particular
vibration, conveying that reflection to our eye. We retain the photon-pattern,
or that segment thereof necessary for our idiosyncratic mnemonic interaction.
What is "returned" is the unused remainder or vehicle (the photonic shell) which
is now infinitesimally altered in character and contains a slightly different
"new" matrix. When a plurality of minds perceives similar shells, then the "new"
visual reality is proportionately strengthened or established. In this way
everyone contributes to the changing visual reality of one another and to the
whole, merely through the passive act of seeing.
Nuit, as Crowley says, is "divided for the sake of love, for the sake of
union..." In other words, take a tip from the sexual act. Self is divided from
other so that it can experience the ecstasy of joining other into the One. The
truth is, all separation, all variety, all opposition is part of one Whole. Once
you know that you are not separate from the object you wish to transform, it is
easily changed in accordance with the Will.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
REALITY ANOMALY
166
From David Brinn's The Practice Effect: "A psychosomatic reality anomaly has its
start when we surround [the centroid mass] by a field of improbability..." But,
yes. Seth aside, we might add to Brinn's observation that this "improbability"
is the key to ex nihilo manifestation.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
REALITY-TEMPLATES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
REALITY-TUNNEL
R.A. Wilson: "An emic reality established by a vivid metaphor and transmitted
through symbolism across generations. "A nagging question crops up in the mind
of the ordinary denizen of "objective" Western, Xtian, technological society as
to whether it's "Reality" we're taking about as being "alterable" or whether
it's only individual subjective experience. Apart from the reality of the
Original Mind or of Nirvana, let's say, there are at least two common varieties
of reality: personal individual experience and the objective consensus reality
of society. We've only just dropped the third: scientific objectivity.
Contemporary physicists are now able to hypothesize sub-categories of reality:
Zeroeth Level, First Level, Second Level, etc., but as Wilson adds, "90% of all
we experience is our own imagination!" That experience is called a "reality
tunnel."
The trick is to recognize how the tunnel has been "customized." Only then can we
look clearly at so-called "objective" reality and effectively change it.
Scientists believe they have a corner on that market, because they demand strict
controls and dispassionate observation. But without realizing it, they're still
operating from within their own reality tunnels. They may be able to measure the
temperature of the dragon's breath and the length of its claws, but it's still a
dragon to them. Whereas to enlightened observers, the dragon may be only fire
and paper (or, at the other extreme, the great rooster-headed god, Abraxas
himself).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
REDEEMERS
There have been several: Buddha, Zoroaster, Goel Jesus, Abu Al-Qasim Muhammad
Ibn Abd Allah Abd Al-Muttalib Ibn Hashim (Plus Mani and Asklepios).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
REINCARNATION
Advanced minds seem to take reincarnation for granted: Plato, Emerson, Edison,
Shaw, Jung -- even Nietzsche and Schopenhauer. All life transmigrates -- indeed,
not just life, but everything "returns." Many find the latter idea hard to take
-- as though there must be not only no mice in the Afterworld, but no machines!
Yet, obviously, if one thing evolves, then everything evolves. Molecules of
steel and granite cling tenaciously, as do we, to permanence and the spider
chooses her life, even as we choose ours, because spiderdom is the acme of her
aspirations. Where the will exists, there return exists.
167
Even if the evolution of life out of the inanimate does not indicate mind apart
from brain, even if it demonstrates only the "accidental" fact that things must
mutate "upward" or else dissolve downward into entropy, then "mind" or "purpose"
is synonymous with or implicit in "accidence" itself. The one apodictic truth is
that life and complexification have prevailed, whatever else has not, including
the "content" of entropy.
The universe is mind, as we've pointed out elsewhere. The purpose of mind is to
know itself, and knowing can succeed only through particularization.
One way to understand metempsychosis is to imagine our poor sublunary lives as
pressings onto phonograph records, on the Akasha's etheric record. When the Atma
particle, or Oversoul, incarnates, it shuffles off its generalized shell and
starts to particularize. In so doing it may, under certain rare and privileged
circumstances, find itself able to examine previous akashic recordings in which
it formed similar particularizations. The Oversoul itself, however, is made up
of all these countless recorded souls. With each experience it grows in
metamorphic complexity. In the Oversoul the Whole is greater that its parts --
although when it separates individually the part is naturally greater than the
Whole.
The Buddhists hold that there is no "immutable soul." Therefore reincarnation is
simply a way of expressing the rebirth of unenlightened mind. Rebirth is then
merely like the same sand pouring into different vessels: bucket, goblet, urn,
etc. If death is the abandonment of personal self, then the dividing walls
between us crumble and memory has access to all former lives. Most people tend
to remember only the former lives of the more interesting or arresting
personalities: kings, queens, martyrs, monsters, etc. That's why there are so
many former Napoleons and Cleopatras and so few kitchenmaids and village idiots.
Finally, we must detach ourselves from the encapsulating Xtian belief in literal
"Resurrection." We must understand that the "raising of the dead" is a
metaphorical version, not of reincarnation, but of renewal within life. To be
reborn of the flesh, of fire, of water and the spirit -- these are its
tetramorphic aspects, to be sure, but resurrection, reincarnation and being
"born again" are all symbols of the birth or rebirth of the spirit within the
"dead" soul of materialistic greed. Rebirth begins before physical death and
proceeds post-mortem into actual reincarnation. Reincarnation per se, however,
is not acceptable to orthodox Xtianity in the slightest because it neutralizes
Salvation.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RELIGION
The word "religion" derives from the Latin prefix, re (an intensive) + ligio,
"to tie, to bind," hence "a practice designed to tie down tightly, as though by
a spell-binding force." If religions were not impervious to change, they would
quickly dissolve into the chaos of the occult.
Religion is worship. It is based on the strict separation of divinity and
humanity. Magic, on the contrary, is the invocation or evocation of spirits or
divinity based on kinship or identity with them.
Living religions begin by being as creative, spontaneous and iconoclastic as the
arts. But that creative fire quickly damps down to immutable dogma and robot-
priests. Worship for its own sake amounts to little more than useless idolatry.
It is utterly infra dig for any intelligent human being. The sole purpose of
ritual is the arousal of consciousness in the participant. When such awakening
fails to take place, it is time to throw the ikons to the dogs. The universe is
self-created and everything in it created itself and goes on creating itself.
There are higher beings, to be sure, but it is a perilous mistake to worship
"The Creator" who is as far from perfect as you can get and still live on this
side of Nothing. Nor should we consider humanity, in its present condition, to
be anything but imperfect. Along with Nietzsche, we should see man as capable of
infinite improvement. But Nietzsche's so-called "superman" will never evolve
without struggle -- and not be the easy struggle of fascistic tyranny over
168
material forms, but by the infinitely more difficult way of universal internal
enlightenment.
Since there are infinite levels of enlightenment the majority of people are
incapable of consensus or agreement, hence any idea of a religious
"congregation" is absurd. As for the profane multitudes... unaware that
omniscience, omnipotence and immortality comprise the deepest foundation of
existence, they consider their own confusion to be the highest expression of
consciousness. The ultimate purpose of creation is to know itself through the
experience of eternal expansion of the mind. It is physical or fiscal expansion,
however, that is of primary interest to homo vulgaris.
The mission of the magician isn't necessarily to bring down the traditional
houses of religion -- especially the monoliths: Islam, Christendom or Judaism.
But neither can he support them. For it is a truism that there is wisdom in the
individual and it is difference that we should value, not sameness. For the
magician, far more acceptable alternatives to monotheism can be found in India,
Egypt, Tibet, etc. with their practices of Lamaism, Tantrism, Yoga and so on, or
in the atheistic systems of the Tao and Buddhism. But always -- though he
understands and honors tradition, the magus creates his own rituals and
observances, tailored to his own needs. He does not serve established orders. As
Madame Blavatsky so hopefully put it, "There is no religion higher than truth."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RING-PASS-NOT
As the magician draws his circle to keep the demons from entering his world, so
other monads draw their own circles to keep out the magician. The ring-pass-not
is that Level of attainment beyond which you cannot go. In occult literature,
according to Alice Bailey, it is a term used "to denote the periphery of the
sphere of influence of any central life force, and is applied equally to all
atoms, from the atom of matter as dealt with by the physicist or chemist through
the human planetary atoms up to the great atom of a solar system. The ring-
pass-not of the average person is the spheroidal form of his mental body which
extends considerably beyond the physical and enables him to function on the
lower levels of the mental plane."
HPB (The Secret Doctrine) defines the RPN as: "The circumference of the sphere
of influence of any center of positive life. This includes the fire sphere of
magnetic work of the solar orb, viewing it as the body of manifestation of a
Solar Logos or to a planetary scheme and could equally well be applied to the
sphere of activity of the human Ego."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RITUAL
There is only one thing to be said for ritual: Create your own or risk being
swallowed up by some damned religion's stercus taurinum.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The author's name is merely old Roman "Remus". The intrusive "h" was a German
grandfather's idea to give the correct pronunciation for other Teutons. Latin
names are (or were) common in Germany and Scandinavia (cf. Rommel). A
permutation of the name is also seen in Arminius, a German prince who defeated
the Romans in the First Century. See Amullus Silvius (also Armand, Herman,
etc.). According to Jung, the twins represent the religious conviction (like
Moses in the bulrushes) that one is a prince by birth and forced to live as an
ordinary person until destiny reveals his true status to the world: Romulus and
Remus, Remus being the poor victim of oppression, Romulus the emerging prince:
169
O Gemini of Latium, gentle and cruel,
Princes, wolf-suckled, born to rule:
O Gemini of Latium, gentle and cruel,
Princes, wolf-suckled, born to rule:
The one to be ground in the dust,
The other to rise as he must...
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ROSE
Most occultists claim that the rose stands for the manifest world with the self
at the center. As the "Redemption of Man," the red rose is "redemption by force"
and the white rose is "redemption through enlightenment." The rose is to
Occidental mysticism what the lotus is to the orient.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RUACH
Stands for the Intellect, also the Hebrew word for the "Air" element.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
170
RUMI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
RUNES
The early Germanic alphabet obtained for mankind through Odin's sacrifice. Like
the Egyptian hieroglyphs, obtained by Thoth, and other sacred alphabets, the
runes hold all the powers of mind. Originally, each letter had a meaning of its
own, in addition to the word of which it was a spelling element. Therefore,
runes could be cast for divination, just as were the letters of the Hebrew
alphabet, the Greek alphabet and the Babylonian syllabary.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
S
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SACRIFICE
Anton LaVey's Satanism frowns on self-sacrifice and the Catholic Church calls
suicide a sin. Xtianity offers "eternal life" in "God," which is all very well,
provided you know what "God" is. Once we stop separating from the Whole, we
automatically place self-sacrifice above eternal life and, in doing so,
paradoxically, we transform immolation into immortality. In Buddhism, which sees
the true extinction of the ego in Nirvana, i.e., as release from both death and
rebirth, sacrifice means having the compassion to remain in the world in order
to help others. Thus, the self-incendiarism of Buddhists as protests against the
war in Viet Nam were an extreme form of compassion. They were sacrifices in the
Judeo-Christo-Islamic sense, but for a bodhisattva it is not a sacrifice to die,
it's a gift.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SAGITTARIUS
The sign of the Centaur, embodiment of the struggle between the animal nature
and reason, the corporeal and the spiritual forces. The flexibility of fire,
ruled by Jupiter, planet of the God of Lightning. The goal of Sagittarius is to
transcend all limitations of earth and the flesh, to be assisted by good fortune
and an adaptable, accommodating nature.
Some famous Saggitarians are: de la Salle, Spinoza, Toulouse-Lautrec, Dale
Carnegie, Carry Nation, William Blake, Mark Twain, Abbie Hoffman, Kazantzakis,
Carlyle, Kandinsky, Disney, Jonathon Swift, Flaubert, Eiffel, Noel Coward,
Margaret Mead, Arthur C. Clarke, Klee, Edith Piaf, Jane Fonda.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SAHASRA-DAL-KANWAL
171
("The Lotus of a Thousand Petals.") The capital city of the Astral Plane.
According to Paul Twitchell, the Wright bothers took their plans for the flying
machine and Bell his telephone from its famous Museum of Millions.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SAINT NICHOLAS
Bishop of Myra, died 342 A.D. Patron Saint of Russia and of young people, his
day is December 6th. Associated with Teutonic water sprite, Nekker, who saves
seamen from drowning and with Old Nick, the forerunner of death. Later corrupted
into "Santa Claus."
In "Earthly Powers", Anthony Burgess describes the libretto of an opera based on
the life of Saint Nicholas, borrowed largely from an account by Anatole France.
Since few people now anything about this peculiar person, other than that he is
the patron saint of children and shipwrecked sailors, it might be interesting to
look more closely. The entire opera is far too long to quote verbatim from the
novel, but briefly, this is the plot up to the end of the first act:
The story begins, somehow, with the corpses of Bishop Nicholas's three adopted
sons (Mark, Matthew and John) who have been put into a pickel barrel, whereupon,
because of the action of the pickel acid, the young men are brought back to
life. Once resurrected, the first son turns Nicholas's house into a brothel
wherein Nicholas is tempted by sins of the flesh. Fearing the loss of his soul,
he invokes Jesus Christ, who appears to him as the naked god, Pan, whereupon the
poor man yields to his weaknesses. Afterwards he flagellates himself and is
thereby purified enough so that he can attend the Council of Nicµa in order to
denounce the Arian heresy. In case you've forgotten, the Arian heresy insists
that the Father and Son are of the same substance (homoousia), whereas the true
faith insists that they are only of similar substance (homoiousia) -- thus
proving the importance of an iota. Meanwhile, the second son has been busy
forging documents to denounce Nicholas as an even worse heretic. At the Council,
the women of the town appear to ask for prayers for their men who are at sea in
a storm. The Council, of course, wants to throw them out for disrupting their
holy work, but jolly old St. Nick intercedes for the sailors' wives, by
wrestling with an Arian bishop. At this point Matthew reveals the documents
proving that his father has stated that the only true God is Venus. Nicholas is
disgraced ecclesiastically and the ships go down at the same time.
In the second and final act of the opera, Nicholas, after a period of sack cloth
and ashes, has been reinstated by the Pope as a full bishop again. It seems,
however, that a number of German tribes have been converted to Christianity by
Arians and the heresy is going full blast. John, the third son, is all for going
to Germany in order to torture and kill heretic women and children. Nicholas
argues, at first, that theirs is a religion of love, but John points out that
"these are foul heretics who believe Christ to be co-eternal with the Father!"
So Nicholas is persuaded to join in the holy war, though he soon regrets it. He
asks Heaven to send down Love and "Venus herself appears as goddess of brothels
for soldiers!" Mothers are screaming for a miracle and one of them hands
Nicholas the bloody corpse of her child. Nicholas, with the child in his arms,
now asks God why He had brought the three wicked sons back to life in the first
place and when there is no answer, cries out: "You are a God of hate, a God who
murders the innocent!" There is no reply to that either, of course, and the
curtain descends.
So it is that to this very day, the red suit represents Nicholas's sins of the
flesh, for which he atones with the ashes of chimneys, while the bag upon his
back is his burden of shame. Of course, in the 20th Century we no longer honor
shame, so the bag simply contains the poisonous fruits of materialistic tyranny.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SAKSAKSALIM
172
The 25th Tunnel (also called The Zigzagging) is the distorted alchemy in which
two great beasts are engaged in battle, the opposite or perversion of the goal
of Alchemy, the marriage of opposites.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SALAMANDER
Fire elemental. A small salamander manages hearth and furnace and a larger one
deals with volcanoes, earthly holocausts and the like. Its emblem is the Lamp.
It is, supposedly, drawn by energy and strength but repelled by temperament,
irascibility and violence. This powerful nature spirit, however, does not easily
communicate with man and is the most difficult for us to understand. Its
etymology, of course, is the Persian word for any lizard, samandar.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SAMADHI
Yogic enlightenment; Union of Self with Not-Self. Final state before Nirvana.
Contemplation of True Reality in state of even-mindedness when dualism has been
calmed (Nirvana is the removal of Dualism altogether).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
"Summer's end." Celtic Hallowe'en when the door to the other world is opened for
one night, Saman being the druidic angel of death. This is also the Druid's
festival of harvest fire. The Jack o' Lantern is said to have been the emblem of
what was originally a spirit who had been refused entrance to both Heaven and
Hell.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SANKHYA
The ancient Hindu philosophy which exerted the strongest influence on Buddhism.
Created by Kapila in 600 B.C., it reveals how the Kosmos has been engaged in a
dualistic war between Prakriti (physical nature, matter or reality) and Purusha
("Person," Soul of the Universe, Archetypal man, Brahma, spirit, etc.). In the
end, Purusha and Prakriti must be re-united in order to set in motion the
world's evolution. Essential teaching is also encountered in Zoroastrianism,
Gnosticism and contemporary psychiatry. The hallmarks of Prakriti, as follows,
are known as gunas and they can be related perfectly to Alchemy:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SANSKRIT ZODIAC
Signs: Planets:
MESA ("Ram") Sun SURYA
VRISABHA ("Bull") Moon CHANDRA
MITHUNA ("Pair") Mercury BUDHA
173
KARKATAKA ("Crab") Mars ANGARAKA
SIMHA ("Lion") Venus SHUKRA
KANYA ("Maiden") Jupiter CURA
TULA ("Scale") Saturn SHANI
VRISCHIKA ("Scorpion")
DHANUS ("Bow")
MAKARA ("Crocodile")
KUMBHA ("Water Jug")
MINA ("Fish")
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SATAN
In the old Abbey of Thelesme (a word of uncertain origin), the motto was "An
(if) thou dost no harm, do what thou wilt." Crowley changed the word slightly,
giving it the frankly Greek spelling and meaning, Thelema - the "will". And he
pushed the motto a step further: "Do what thou wilt, shall be the whole of the
Law." Then along came the revisionists and xtian-inspired followers who changed
that to "Will, under Love," or some such nonsense, thus watering it down and
vitiating its liberating inspiration.
Neo-Satanists, in keeping with the underground rebellion against the over-
controlled, over-structured society of the 90's are restoring the concept of "Do
what thou wilt" to its properly Satanic brood of warriors.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SATORI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SATURN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SATURNALIA
The prototypical Roman holiday in which all things were permitted, from December
17th to the 24th. Public banquets were held in which masters served their slaves
and criminals were pardoned. A central place of honor to children and the aged
was reserved. Gifts were exchanged and social games prevailed. Above all, it was
the festival that honored Time and the Golden Age of the Past. It is east to see
why Xmas in preempting and perverting this feriae servorum has developed so
bloated and grotesque a stranglehold on the Euro-American psyche.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SCHIZOPHRENIA
174
It has been defined as a cognitive handicap in which reason is limited to purely
concrete processes and neither symbol nor abstraction can be used or understood.
What we see, however, is not necessarily impairment, but misplacement. The
schizophrenic demands exactitude because he needs firm guidelines in a world
that is arbitrary, hostile and irrational. The world, however, believing itself
to be sane, views such allergy as a disease, rather than as the simple, psychic
defense that it obviously is.
Far from being despised as socially undesirable, schizophrenia should be hailed
as one of mankind's invaluable resources. Functional schizophrenia is not
madness but a focussing of consciousness that is simply not sanctioned by
ordinary society, except in sleep. Animals also inhabit worlds of their own --
the elephant world, the eagle world, the rattlesnake world, etc. which society
misunderstands and condemns. Both "incurable" schizophrenics and "untameable"
wild animals, therefore, are systematically crowded out to make room for the
breeding, conforming multitudes of homo sap.
Admittedly, the "afflicted" have little or no control over their mental state
and often feel themselves to be drowning in raging psychic seas, but that is
generally in reaction to the insanity of the consensual world and lack of
special training in how to use these precious, divine talents. At any rate, our
society's longing to "medicate" it totally out of existence is stupid. We can
only wish that schizophrenes were better provided for, even pampered -- and very
carefully educated -- so as to help them cast off the miserable and crippling
paranoia which is its natural enough accompaniment, given the hostility of our
world for anything it fails to understand. Most schizophrenes are as abysmally
ill-educated as the rest of our society and so can't take advantage of their
talent or defend themselves. Their "madness" is, more often than not, no more
than the quite "logical" result of ignorance, confusion and fear. If anything,
schizophrenics are superrational beings coping with enormous burdens of logic.
Marijuana produces a similar panic which has to be overcome. It too removes the
filter that normally keeps us from experiencing the underlying, fundamental
chaos of the world. From a functional (i.e., not physically diseased)
standpoint, the paranoia resulting from schizophrenia is a normal and
successfully adaptive reaction to an extreme and untenable situation, e.g.,
contemporary society in its habitually evil and mindless mode. And society, in
failing to provide a place for these people, is doing all of us a great
disservice.
It is as if we forced athletes to run in lead-soled, lumberjack boots and to
keep their hands in their pockets at all times. It is as if we expected
Rembrandt to content himself with a monochromatic spray-paint gun and an
untagged bus.
Since schizophrenia bypasses the psychic censor, it affords tremendous insight
into many metaphysical mysteries and considerably increases the level of
extrasensory perception. Moreover, it is out of the same matrix that art,
discovery, invention and genius evolve. Even "chemical" schizophrenia (whether
naturally or artificially induced), can, to a moderate degree be a positive
condition. But it is logic and reason, unhampered by any fawning to authority or
family values, that most often lead the schizophrenic person into trouble. That
is hardly an "illness" to be "cured." It's a line of inner resourcefulness,
originality and survival.
Oddly enough, talk like that doesn't, as you might think, go right over my
shrink's head. We both realize that he only nods to the establishment flakes in
order to survive professionally.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SCHOOLS OF MAGIC
There are, traditionally, three schools of magic in the world: Black, White and
Yellow. These colors, however, have nothing to do with the usual understanding
of them as "good" or "evil," they are simply three avenues. The black school
warns that life is pain and sorrow. The white school teaches that it can be
transformed into joy. The yellow school practices passivity and non-interference
175
(occasionally it interferes to keep the black and white schools from destroying
one another, lest the winner turn on the yellow school).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SCIENTOLOGY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SCORPIO
The Tacere of the Tetramorph. Sign of "Sex & Death," it may stand as the
archetype of Alchemical Transformation. Beginning with the lowest level, the
scorpion, it rises to the highest level, the eagle, via the evolutionary link of
the serpens mercurialis, Ourobouros or the Lemniscate of Eternity. Nothing and
Being are united by the Ourobouros. The Underworld and Heaven are united by the
serpent. Life and Death are united by Eternity.
Some famous Scorpions (Oct. 23 - Nov. 21): Picasso, Sylvia Plath, Keats,
Goebbels, Christopher Columbus, Will Rogers, Vivian Leigh, Joel McCrea, Captain
Cook, Dostoyevsky, Charles Manson, Robert Fulton, Halley, Billy Graham, Martin
Luther, Voltaire, Hetty Green, Rorschach, Mme. Curie.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SCRYING
(Or crystal gazing.) The trick is to learn first how to clear the crystal. What
is needed is a blank screen (indeed an empty wall serves equally well). Shutting
the eyes in hope of stirring up images can also be useful, if the practitioner
can keep from falling asleep. A crystal ball is better only because it strongly
stimulates the image-making faculty without eliciting soporific side-effects.
Images so produced can be written down or recorded on tape for subsequent
interpretation by the intuition. The serious practitioner should keep a record
of recurrent common images and their occult meanings for him (e.g., a mountain
might be a "challenge," a tree could be "health", a lion is "friendship, etc.).
Then, when these images appear in the crystal ball, their condition can provide
him with detailed information: a snow- covered mountain would be a worthwhile
challenge, a rugged mountain would be a difficult challenge, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SEDU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SEKHMET
Supreme female deity of Egypt in whose care we are nourished and protected. When
her wrath is stirred she is without mercy. "The Powerful One," her head was a
lioness, an attribute of Ra, i.e., his enraged "Eye," which cannibalized his
enemies. She was a ruthless goddess of bloodthirsty slaughter. All the same,
being so bloody she was also capable of fiercely driving sickness away and hence
176
was also a healing goddess. A "priest of Sekhmet" was a doctor who could rout
evil spirits. It is said (Gods of Aquarius) that she has returned in our time
and occupies a collective unconscious realm somewhere between being and
potential summoning. We do well to place her in the forefront of our pantheon
because she is essential to our health and protection. She is an excellent
demon-slayer.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SEN-ZAR
The most ancient language in the world, the origin of Sanskrit. It was known to
all initiates from Atlantis to Maya to Egypt, India and China. HPB says it is
the language in which the oldest book in the world was written and the tongue
whence she translated the many volumes of Kiu-Ti and The Stanzas of Dyzan (see
KIU-TI). The universal script was believed to have been brought from Venus by
the "Kumaras." It embodied in its characters the original circle, triangle,
cross, tau, pentagram, swastika, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SEPHER YETZIRAH
"Book of Emanations" or Book of "Creation," one of the two major books on the
Qabalah (the other being The Zohar). So called because the level of Yetzirah is
the "world of formation." (There are other qabalistic books -- Sepher HaBahir,
Sepher Hayashan, Sepher ha Malkut, Sepher Raziel Hamalakh and the "Book of
Moses," Sepher Torah). The Sepher Yetzirah contains an account of the 22 letters
of the alphabet and the 10 Sephiroth of the Tree of Life.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SEPHIROTH
From the Sephiroth descend the four root races, each issuing from the one above
it, the lower swallowing the higher: Atziluth -- the first and most spiritual
race; Briah -- the second race composed of the servants of the first; Yetzirah,
the third race (mankind being a fallen sub-race thereof) comprised of cherubim,
seraphim, Lucifer, elohim and the sons of God. Finally, there is the fourth
race, Assiah, containing the Atlanteans and the Qliphoth.
Incidentally, man, having sinned, is imprisoned in the material world with its
eternal reincarnations as punishment until he manages to purify himself.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SERPENT
Everywhere the serpent is a glyph for occult knowledge (magic and healing) and
occult sexuality (the hidden phallus). It is also linked to the underground and
darkness, hence "evil." Standing, as it does, midway between the lower and the
higher forms of life, it is a perfect symbol of evolutionary transformation and
metamorphosis. In the Scorpio symbolism, it stands between the lowly scorpion
and the exalted eagle. In the very first Arcanum we observe that The Magician is
using a serpent as a belt around his middle -- thus he is himself the link
177
between heaven and earth. Hermes meets the ophidious problem of ambiguity head
on by frankly supporting two serpents, assigning one of them to the light and
the other to the darkness.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SET/SETH
Dark god of Egypt -- ruled the Redlands, or Desert, hence those things that were
most fearful to the Egyptians. Sometimes associated with Satan. That
etymological connection, however, is very uncertain. Satan, in Hebrew means "to
accuse," hence Satan is the "adversary" or "critic." On the other hand S-T or
Sh-T, in Egyptian, nearly always has something to do with the "South" or travel
thereto, a sense that is totally lacking in the Hebrew word.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SETH
Entity using Jane Roberts as his amanuensis. The most profound and original of
all the channeled entities over the past few decades. His philosophical insights
into the workings of the human mind are original, eye-opening and profound.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SETHIANS
The Gnostics who taught that there were not two, but three worlds: Light,
Darkness and Spirit.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Each historical era can be characterized by its attraction for one or another of
these principles.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
1. Elemental: Moon
2. Mineral: Saturn
3. Vegetable: Venus
4. Animal: Mars
5. Human: Mercury
178
6. Demi-God: Jupiter
7. God: Sun
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Death and the entry into the Abyss of Non-Being is the equivalent of the sexual
act. As the orgasm is the ultimate affirmation of the body, so the death spasm
is the ultimate denial of the body. On the common level we move in and out of
Death and Life, in and out of the Void, from Manifestation to reincarnated
Manifestation, endlessly. The Samsaric wheel of birth and death is the endless
cosmic act of coitus until the final "orgasm" resulting in the bliss of Nirvana.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
777
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHAKTI
A God's emanating energy. In Hinduism and Lamaism this is the God's feminine
aspect, or the manifestation of the God in the world. It is his wife or
concubine, with whom he is perpetually engaged in intercourse while
simultaneously doing his works.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHALICU
The 31st Tunnel of the Qliphotic Tarot, perhaps meaning, "The Drawing Out of the
Water." Shin, the Judgement or Resurrection, is here rendered as NON PATEBO,
that is, "I shall not open!" That is, the Archon is not passed.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHAMAN
I see the technical difference between a shaman and any other kind of magician
as quite profound. Whereas all the others concern themselves with exterior
events, the shaman is interested in self-understanding and self-experimentation.
He seeks frequent death and rebirth. His psychedelic herb tears him to pieces,
whence he must put himself back together in a new and improved version.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHANGRI-LA
Invention of James Hilton in his novel Lost Horizon. It is a hidden land, far
from corrupt civilization, devoted to spiritual, rather than material ends. The
original movie, based on the novel, tended to give these goals an unwarranted
Xtian slant.
We've since learned, however, that there really is a mountain pass (for which
the Tibetan word is la) called "Changri" in the Nepalese Himalayas, near
Everest. There is, it seems, a Sherpa community living there.
179
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHAZAM
A magical word circa 1940, used in comicbook legend to transform Billy Batson
into "Captain Marvel." It is a notariqon of: S for the wisdom of Solomon; H for
the strength of Hercules; A for the stamina of Atlas; Z for the power of Zeus; A
for the courage of Achilles; M for the speed of Mercury.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHE
One of the Forgotten Ones. Invoked by the vultures atop the Pillars of the
Abyss.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHOGGOTH
Lovecraft's word. According to Grant, it's from the Chaldean Beth Shaggathai
("House of Fornication"). Bubbles of the abyss inhabited by imprisoned
magicians, suggesting the parallelism of spermatozoa in the "House" of semen.
(See YOG-SOTHOTH). Shoggoth are similar to Egregors but are unwieldy and
difficult to manage.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SHUB-NIGGURATH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SIDDHIS
1. Anima -- The power to shrink into a tiny ball so that all substances
become pervious to it.
2. Mahima -- The power to become a giant body.
3. Lashima -- The infinite reach of all organs, so that even a fingertip can
touch the moon.
4. Garima -- The lightening of the body, so that one can rise up on a
sunbeam.
5. Prapti -- This is the power to make predictions, to understand unknown
tongues, to heal sickness, reading the thoughts of others and knowing the
language of the heart.
6. Prakamya -- The power to alter the course of nature and history, to change
age into youth.
7. Vasitwa -- The power to hypnotise men and animals, to make them obedient,
the power to restrain feelings, passions and emotions.
8. Isitwa -- Apotheosis of the Yogi, who no longer has need of siddhis,
because he can accomplish any desire.
180
The 9th and 10th powers are the beginning of divinity and comprise the power to
suppress desire at will, to become invisible, to transmute any substance, to
fly, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SIGNATURES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SILENCE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SIPHRAH DZENIOUTA
The Book of Concealment. Oldest Hebrew document in the Zohar, according to HPB,
originally written in Senzar.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SIRIUS
(See SOTHIS.) In recent times reputable French anthropologists who visited the
Dogon people of Mali, living in the furthest reaches of Africa, discovered that
their mythology revealed an astonishing astronomical knowledge of the star
system Sirius. This knowledge could not have evolved from merely studying the
star by the naked eye. Only a strong, modern telescope could possibly have told
them that Sirius is really two stars, that it has a companion, Sirius B, which
is invisible from the earth without a telescope. Nor should they have known that
this invisible star has an elliptical orbit, that it is heavier and yet much
smaller and so on. The Dogons claim they were told such secret things by Sirian
explorers who visited the earth in millennia past. It now appears that
missionaries may have confused the issue by teaching them our astronomy at an
earlier time.
The connection of the names "Dogon" and the "Dog Star" is based on a peculiarity
of language. For the French who made these discoveries, English is a mystery and
the similarity of Dogon/dog is an illuminating revelation -- for the word "dog"
181
is, of course, non-existent in French, which uses chien. For us, however, the
connection is difficult to see as anything more than a simple-minded and
childish pun.
In Egyptian history, the rising of Sirius, the Dog star, at dawn marked the
beginning of the year. Sirius (called Sothis) was considered to be "the sun
beyond the Sun."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SISYPHUS
In his The Myth of Sisyphus, Camus gives us a vision of Sisyphus that he claims
is heroic: "... at that brief moment, before the stone begins to roll back
downhill, Sisyphus triumphs again and again over the gods." I suggest that such
a "triumph" is hardly worth mentioning. Indeed, it is no triumph at all, but a
pathetic underscoring of Camus' own chronic spiritual depression. For these and
other crimes against the human psyche, Camus stands forever indicted.
There is, in fact, a far more satisfying and useful meaning to the story of
Sisyphus than Camus was ever brave enough to reach out for. Nor was Camus able
to encompass the obvious truth that mortals who incur the wrath of the gods,
become themselves semi-divine. For to be touched by the gods, even to be
tormented by their cruelties, is to lose one's mortality and partake of the
higher life.
Several versions of the story exist, but briefly what happens is that Sisyphus
betrays a secret of Zeus in exchange for favors of a less important god.
Apparently, even this brief encounter is sufficient to bestow upon him the
ability to lock up Death as soon as Zeus hurls him into the underworld. He even
manages to wangle permission from Pluto to return briefly to earth in order to
conclude some personal business. Once back in life, however, Sisyphus will have
nothing to do with the suggestion that he return to Hades.
So Hermes is sent to drag him by the scruff of his neck back to his old
moldering grave -- once there to spend forever pushing a stone up to the top of
a tall hill. Once reaching the top, the stone would roll down again and he would
have to push it up the hill again, ad aeternitatem.
Now what is really happening is quite obvious. In wresting the power from Death,
Sisyphus acquires the ability to see what it is that the gods in their mercy
have tried to spare us. The mercy of death is forgetfulness, so that we are not
obligated to re-experience, to no real purpose, the futility of remembering over
and over again the tedium of being born, living and dying. In other words,
Sisyphus becomes nothing less than the unwilling turner of the Karmic Wheel of
Samsaric Life and Death, from which Buddha would deliver us. Since he refuses to
die, Sisyphus is condemned to live forever -- that is, to remember everything.
It isn't just that he wants to survive, but that he wants to survive at any
cost, and so his punishment is to be granted only the mechanical side of life,
stripped of its meaning.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
666
Many have been the designators of this apocalyptic finger, from Nero to the
Popes, to Mohammed, to Ronald Wilson Reagan. But only through careful
numerological analysis can we be certain of its true meaning. In The Dimensions
of Paradise, John Mitchell shows clearly how this "number of the beast" is
actually the Gnostic designation for Jesus Christ and the Crucifiction foisted
on the world by the corrupt Church. Christ as an historical figure instead of a
spiritual force was repugnant to the Gnostics. Decadent Babylon and the New
Jerusalem are one and the same City of God, symbolizing the death rattle for the
perverted religion and the birth of a new understanding. In Revelation, 666
refers to the phrase kai ho arithmos Chi-Xi-Sigma and stands for Jesus Christ as
the idol on the cross rather than the Gnostic idea of the new Christ spirit,
"the son of man," present in all men (much like our own "New Aeon" feeling). The
182
New Jerusalem numbers are 3168, 1080, 1224 and 1764, but especially 864 and 666
(all of these, by the way, reduce to 9). New Jerusalem itself is 961 (seven), as
is "the number of the leaves of the Tree of Life which are for the healing of
nations."
A similar attribution can be found in Kenneth Grant's work (Outside the Circles
of Time). For him, as for the writer of Revelation, the number has special
apocalyptic meanings: "The Christians misunderstood the Unspeakable Name (IHVH)
and supposed that by causing a rift between the Old Ones and the life-wave on
earth they could 'save' mankind, and incidentally [of course!] gain total
mastery of the planet." In order to do this, they inserted the Hebrew letter
Shin (Grant calls this the letter of "Spirit," others associate it with "fire")
between IH and VH, the Sh of Spirit. Thus we derive the name Yeheshuah or
Johoshuah (IHShVH), which in Latin we call Jesus. The Xtians proceeded from
there to identify this mythological name with a real person who, as Gerald
Massey demonstrated, could only have been -- in an historic sense -- Jesus ben
Pandira, an Egyptian who lived a century earlier. This wizard's mother was named
Mary Magdalene, and he was stoned to death for sorcery. But the letter Shin,
Grant tells us, "represents the triple-tongued flame of the Great Old Ones,
whose supreme concentration -- Choronzon -- exhibits the triple Firetongue in
the number 333." The latter is "mirrored in the final Heh of Tetragrammaton, the
daughter-letter, whose number becomes the trebled Hex and the Unholy Act of
Earth's destruction, under the rule of the Son of Typhon who is Set/Satan and
the Anti-Christ."
Thus, to this very day, the idol that the entire "Christian" world bows down to
is not the Christos spirit at all, but the Anti-Christ. The washed faces, the
white gloves, the alb and pale lilies of Sunday worship cannot dispel the blood
of ages. Average Galileans are unable to display love of any kind for their
fellow-man. Instead, they constantly evoke the images of sin, corruption, misery
and damnation. All "holy books" contain contradictions, lies and false
teachings, but the Xtian Bible is a monument of fabrications and contradictions,
second only to the Koran.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SKYCLAD
The witch's word for "naked." The appearance of the magician in performing rites
of magic or goetia usually requires nudity, bare feet or disheveled hair. Nudity
increases self-consciousness, bare feet indicate new paths, disheveled hair
calls to chaos, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SODALITY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SOLIPSISM
The conviction that there is no external reality beyond oneself. This view is no
longer considered illogical, insane or even necessarily psychopathic. The
183
inhabitant of a solipsistic universe, however, must realize sooner or later,
that everything in it is his own creation -- including all the things he hates
and fears. By extension it should be obvious that our society is simply in a
larger solipsistic boat.
Michael Bertiaux, in his Voudun Gnostic Workbook gives us a glimpse of the
infinity of dimensions even within one's own solipsism and a possible link to
interpenetrations with non-solipsistic universe. He cites the interdimensional
work of Japanese artist and Esoteric Plutonian Shintoist, Hiroyuka Fukuda:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SOLOMON
The biblical king, 1000 B.C., noted for his infinite wisdom. In fact, when he
first became king of Israel, an angel asked him what he wanted above everything
else and Solomon chose wisdom over wealth. He was also a great magician. He was
the inventor of a television-like mirror used in divination, which Paracelsus
reinvented 2500 years later. Solomon means "peaceful," for he ruled in a time of
peace. This is important, because until then the kings of Israel had busily
engaged in war. It was this miracle, in ancient times of peace, that enabled
Solomon to build, with the help of angels, elementals, aethyrs and spirits, a
great temple from cedars of Lebanon donated by Hiram, King of Tyre. The temple
was seven years in the making and exceedingly beautiful. It housed many great
Gods (despite the Judaic aversion to polytheism). When Solomon did finally go to
war, he transported his armies on flying carpets and gliders. In Talmudic
teaching, according to Wade Baskin's Sorcerer's Handbook, Solomon was instructed
by Ashmedai, king of the Shedim.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SOMA
The ancient Hindu drink of the Gods made of the climbing plant known as
sarcostema viminalis or asclepias acida found in the mountains of Indo-Irania.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SOTHIS
The Star of the Tarot. Greek for Sirius, the Dog Star, the Egyptian Soped.
Sothis, bearing a star in her crown, is the Nilotic goddess of inundation. Her
Egyptian title was "Ruler of the Stars." At Elephantine she was known as Hathor
and elsewhere as Satis, another aspect of Isis. Sothis is also called "The Star
of Set and is represented by the Silver Star of the Great White Brotherhood.
Colin Wilson says that an "Egyptian treatise attributed to Hermes Trismegistus"
asserts that Hermes landed on earth to teach mankind civilization and then
returned to the stars. Sirius continues, however, Grant tells us, through the
184
focus of the Andromeda connection, via Soror Andahadna and others, to
"equilibrate" groups like the O.T.O. (transmitting through beings such as Lam,
Aossic-Aiwass, etc.) and to bombard the "Interior Planes" with Maatian Age
emanations.
In the Maatian system, according to Grant's theory, everything is conscious,
with galaxies being super-evolved complexes of consciousness. Sirius (like all
stars) not only has "Sirians" in bodies like ours, but also has star
consciousness, just as Earth has a planetary consciousness. Each galaxy is
responsible for assigned "solar" systems and there are many cosmic streams with
termini scattered through the continuum of the space-time warp, from
interstellar to interplanetary to intermolecular. The Sol-Sirius link is just
one of these termini. Other binodal power lines are Isis (a not yet discovered
planet) and the Andromeda galaxy, Uranus-Algol and Jupiter-Betelgeuse. Our own
Milky Way connects star systems at more than Andromedan distances. The termini
act as giant transformers or power-relay systems, focussing the galactic
emanations like laser beams. One such ray is relayed to Sirius, "the Sun beyond
the sun," which thereupon bibranches for a number of subsequent star-systems,
including Sol, which decodes the "message" and serves as its own laser focus for
the planets.
Man in reacting to all the cosmic influences unconsciously and unsystematically
erupts with energy of his own. Human energy, like the energy of other races in
the Comity of Stars (see COMITY OF STARS) being sent along their respective
links, arrives at Andromeda through the Isidian connection. Andromeda is our
primary broadcaster, Sothis is the amplifier and cpu, Sol the receiver and
decoder. Through the Sothian circuit we receive back some of what we have
emitted, as direction and information. Thus, K.G. tells us, we obtain the words
to define the Age of Maat. R.A. Wilson mentions some of the Sirian
manifestations in his book, The Cosmic Trigger: The Final Secret of the
Illuminati. The only flaw is his demonstration of the active intervention of
Sothis in the affairs of planet earth is the omission of the fact that Sothis
(Sirius) is the Star of Set and that Shaitan-Aiwass (commonly known as Satan) is
its inhabiting spirit. That Gurdjieff was also receiving inspiration from the
Star of Set is not surprising in view of the nature of his work, which was, in
many ways, similar to Crowley's. Also, Wilson fails to detect the presence of
the invisible twin of this influence and its astral level manifestations. Said
influence has resulted in the so-called "New Age" (or Maatian consciousness). In
mythology, Andromeda was sacrificed to the Fish Goat (esoterically understood to
refer to the Aeon of Maat).
An unfortunate few (such as Whitley Streiber has shown in his diary, Communion)
now suffer pseudo-nightmares on a regular basis. These dream shapes, terrible
though they be, collectively serve to concentrate and steady the door-frames
enabling magicians at will to enter the Tunnels of Set and pass over into the
unknown "Universe B." The portals leading into the Space Battlefield (Armageddon
on the Astral Plane) are located between Shaitan's eleven-pyloned Towers. We can
also understand the Sothian current as a variation on the Ophidian Current
(Great Old Ones).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SOUL
The illusion of separation from spirit. It should be understood that the spirit
is that which seeks manifestation and appears as a soul/body. The soul is that
which characterizes, shapes, informs, moves and operates the material flesh and
action it its unique expression. Without the soul, the body is no more than an
automaton or zombie without meaning or purpose. Without the body, the soul is a
wraith and an unfinished blueprint -- electricity without a plug. The Psyche is
that entire part of the soul that ranges from all the depths of the Unconscious
as its roots merge with the physical body all the way up to Consciousness
itself, which is the intended goal of the spirit, like the fruit or blossom of a
plant. That ultimate product, consciousness, is what the Greeks called the nous
and which we translate, somewhat innacurately, as "the mind". But theosophically
185
and alchemically speaking, Mind is much larger. It is the field encompassing
both being and non-being, in which the spirit dwells, a continuum or sphere of
containment for the All (that is, unaccessable "omiscience"). In short, the
spirit seeks to know itself by means of the soul's use of the body as a tool to
create consciousness. When, however, the soul identifies too strongly with the
body, it soon becomes corrupt, turning into a mere slave of the flesh and the
spirit is checkmated and imprisoned.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Born in England, 1817. By marriage, became Mrs. Mary Anne Atwood. Author of A
Suggestive Inquiry into the Hermetic Mystery, 1850. This is the book that
enlightened Israel Regardie, once he had decided to plough through its opacities
until by dint of sheer concentration he should finally fathom the secret of
alchemy. No doubt, however, it was Regardie's simultaneous study of Jung's
Commentary on the Golden Flower, that provided the key. Mrs. Atwood and her
father were dedicated scholars of the occult who got cold feet once A Suggestive
Inquiry was published and they tried to prevent its distribution. They felt that
its secrets must not be made public.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SPELLS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SPHINX
It is the very symbol of "Mystery" itself. The oldest and most puzzling monument
of Egypt, its origin is unknown, even to the Egyptians. The mystery of its
origin can be summed up in its riddle to Oedipus, the answer to which was "man."
The Hebrew for "sphinx" is Baal Taalumoth or "Lord of Secrets." Another Hebrew
word for "secret" is sod (cf. "Sodom") and the Sphinx's connection with Oedipus
("He of the Swollen Foot") suggests a sexual origin to the secret. Although
there were many sphinxes, at its best known point it takes the form of the
tetramorph, having the body of a bull, the face and breast of a woman, the feet
and tail of a lion, and the wings of a bird. Although the word means
"strangulation" in Greek, there is evidence that this was not originally a Greek
word. The Arabic word for "sphinx" is Abul Hawi, "Father of Terror" and in
Egyptian the word was Hu, standing for Harmachi, i.e., "Horus-on-the-horizon."
The Sphinx was originally made of red stone or painted red, for unknown reasons.
(To attract the green celestial influences?)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SPIDER
186
In India the spider is the weaver of the web of Maya, illusion. As the destroyer
of insect life, it is a guardian against invasion of the lower forces. It is the
maternal, feminine force par excellence, inasmuch as the female destroys the
male upon completion of mating. In her web she stands as the center of the
world. In her spinning of the web and devouring her prey she parallels the
waxing and waning of the Moon, involution and evolution, the alternation of
birth and death. The spider, as the Moon, then weaves the destiny of everything
in the world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SPIRIT
Soul and body are what the world sees. The mind connects them. The spirit,
however, is one's own thing. It can be connected to the Cosmic Spirit or partly
to itself and others on a lower level.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SPIRITUALISM
Traffic with the dead. As for my contacts with the dead, which I keep to a
minimum, they have not been particularly interesting. They are quite ordinary
and highly personal. It is not generally considered a clean habit to traffic
with the dead. Both Crowley and HPB consider spiritism to be next door to
necrophilia, if not an overt and particularly nasty sexual perversion.
Most spirits move on rather quickly past the closer shores of the so-called
astral plane, which I prefer to call "Telluria," since it lies so near the
borders of our own world. The newest shades are the strongest, but shortly
thereafter they fade like old photographs. They are not alive, remember. If
death has been recent and if no one has summoned the spirit and if the spirit
has not contacted any living person, chances are that we may obtain at least one
good "conversation." That generally just about uses up the astral envelope.
Warning -- If you have persistent and prolonged contact with the same spirit,
that is highly suspicious. It very well may not be the departed, but some
intruding entity. That is particularly likely if someone other than a friend or
member of the family of the departed is acting as medium. A few unfortunate
wraiths are drawn neither forward nor back and cling to our world for very sick
reasons. In the rare case that the spirit whom you have contacted is dependable
and reasonable then it is surely an advanced being of some kind. But here again,
there are many kinds of "advanced beings" -- few of which indeed are former
earthlings.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SPONTANEITY
One of the axioms of spontaneity (or Chaos Magic) is that every magical trick
works once (usually the first time it's tried) but can't be repeated. As
Heracleitos said, "You can't step into the same river twice."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
STATE VECTOR
The expression in mathematics that describes the states that a quantum system
can be. The collapse of this vector means that the quantum system can be in all
states simultaneously. That is, a thing can exist and not exist at the same
time.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
187
STELA/STELE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
STRENGTH
Tarot Trump number 8 (in Crowley's system, 11). This is probably the least
understood of all the Atus. Our average mind, unable to appreciate the mystery
of ordinary movement, conceives of M/magic(k) as the ability to move solid
objects through the air without physical assistance. And yet we betray our own
unconscious perception by the fact that we are invariably far less impressed at
seeing a feather suspended in the air, than a piano. Is physical strength the
equivalent of strength of will?
Strength, however, whether muscular or mental, is the foundation of true
M/magic(k), for it is the magic of everyday life. When philosophy fails, when
cleverness fails, when riches fail, when everything fails and one is stripped of
all one's powers -- there yet remains the "coiled serpent" of being (Teth),
source of all energy. The miracle of daily movement, work and pleasure is based
upon our physical health and confidence. It is this connection to the "magic of
everyday life," that drew Crowley to the decision to renumber "Strength" as 11,
the well-known number of sorcery. Moreover, since he believed that the source of
all strength lay in the sex drive, he renamed it Lust!
------------------------------------------------------------------------
STUPA
(Chörten in Tibetan.) Found in India, Nepal, Tibet, Burma and China. A stupa is
a dome ranging from a mere burial mound containing the ashes of a saint to a
great temple or pagoda. In Tibet it is often composed of Mani stones. It may or
may not contain a cavity in which numinous objects can be placed. In Hinduism it
is the navel of the universe, Mt. Meru. But its true origin is the Buddha's
topknot, the indicator of his having reached Nirvana.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SUCCUBUS
Thomas Aquinas, darling of the Catholic Church and 13th Century founder of
"scholasticism," believed that devils, as succubi, performed fellatio on
sleeping mortals. Then, as incubi, used the seed so obtained to impregnate
virtuous unmarried women in their sleep, thus producing half human/half demonic
monsters, or what Crowley would have called"moonchildren."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SUFI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
For the magician, the Self and the World are the same thing. When we try to
separate them we get the errors of Science and Religion. The hieros-gamos (or
"divine marriage") of alchemy is none other than the marriage of the Sun (the
self in the world) and the Moon (the world in the self) -- Shining and
reflection, projection and introjection, Yang and Yin. HPB suggests that the Sun
and Moon stand for secret planets, but conventionally the Sun stands for
revelation via self-expression.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SUNYATA
The Void, Emptiness, the Abyss, Chaos. The essentially void nature of phenomena.
Realized only when non-being is seen as the origin of being.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SUPERLUMINATOR
"The world transmuter" -- a fanciful FTL speed of thought device for changing
the world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SUPERSTITION
One man's faith is another man's superstition. Our society, however, for all its
so-called sophistication, is not immune from consensual beliefs that are as
dangerous as they are unfounded. One of these superstitions is that Time is a
moving force and runs on an undeviating track. Another piece of 20th Century
nonsense is the importance of matter.
189
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SWASTIKA
Religious symbol found in Europe, Asia & America. Trevor Ravenscroft: "(In
Atlantis) under the symbol of
the sun wheel or four-armed swastika,' the new (Aryan) Initiates took over the
leadership of the race and became the mediators between the masses ... and the
unseen higher powers. They taught a new religion ... (and) the Aryan peoples
were led out of Atlantis by the great Manu, the last of the Sons of God or
Supermen." In Hinduism the swastika signifies the two forms of Brahma, when
clockwise, Pravritti, the universe flowing outward, when counter-clockwise (as
in the German version), Nirvritti, the involution
of the universe. The "good" swastika is the fiery cross used by the original
fire-priests of Persia. Its left
arm goes up in receptivity and its right arm down in blessing; this the creative
fire of the 3rd Logos, or Holy Spirit.
It has been pointed out that although there are two directions for the swastika
-- one pointing in one direction for the Nazis, the other in the opposite
direction -- both are now considered Nazi emblems.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SWORDS
The suit of Air. Since air is the element of reason, fortune-tellers assign
tragedy and sickness to the suit of swords. The average person does not resort
to reason until disaster strikes. I consider swords to represent the development
of the mind, the 10 of Swords being enlightenment.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SYLPHS
The air elementals, capable of changing their sizes and shapes fantastically,
who have the power of moving easily from dimension to dimension. They are
lovely, ethereal entities whose purpose is to inspire and instruct us. We
attract them by being clever and quick-witted and repel them by being shallow or
capricious. They must always be allowed their freedom. The nature of sylphs is
such that although they can easily be caught and pinned down -- indeed they
appear eager to be bound by us mortals -- once so captured their beauty
instantly fades and they very quickly die. They are as fragile as snowflakes and
the other elements quickly annihilate or absorb them. The word has been traced
to Greek silphe, used by Aristotle to mean a kind of dubious beetle, but its
origin is likely to be Arabic salafa "to boil away," or salifat, "a natural
trait." The ballet, La Sylphide demonstrates all of thisperfectly (Les Sylphides
is merely a choreography without a story.) The Donning encyclopedia describes
sylphs as being highly developed, feminine Intelligences. A sylph may associate
herself with an individual at birth and help him to grow in non-materialistic
ways, to develop his individual freedom and to provide energy in emergencies.
Perhaps the best way to think of a sylph is as a person's "genius."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SYMBOL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SYNCHRONICITY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
SYNCRETISM
Absorption of one god or cult by another, as many of the early Xtian saints and
holidays were taken from paganism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Stele of Revealing
------------------------------------------------------------------------
T
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TABOO
191
"There is only one way to destroy a taboo, and that is to break it." -- Hakim
Bey.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TACHYON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
One of the many Ancient Chinese divinatory systems, of which the I Ching is the
only one of its several companions to have survived. It has long been overlooked
in the East and only recently introduced into the west. It uses 81 tetragrams
instead of the I Ching's 64 and is composed of broken and unbroken lines, plus
lines broken in three. One of the I Ching's flaws is that it presents changes as
cut-and-dried, invariable positive or negative events. As the I Ching is divided
into Yang and Yin, the T'ai Hsüan Ching is divided into Heaven (Yang), Earth
(Yin) and Man (Jen). Man is thus introduced into the cosmic scene as an
unpredictable variable. The T'ai Hsüan's divinatory messages are also far more
succinct and meaningful than those of the I Ching.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TALISMAN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TAMMUZ
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TANHA
The thirst for manifestation and life that is experienced by the unreincarnated
soul.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
192
TANTRA
Usually associated with Tibetan sexual tantras, but a tantra is any ritualized
or repeated movement, or "mode," designed to invoke a god or deva. Specifically
it deals with teaching five important subjects: The Creation and Destruction of
the World, the Worship of the Gods, Attainment of the Magical Siddhis and Union
with the Supreme Identity.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TARO(T)
(See AZOTH.) The Great Wheel or "Book of Thoth." The letters form a magic
square, thus:
O R A T
R O T A
A T O R
T A R OWhich possibly means, "Ator (darkness) speaks through the
wheel of Tartarus." (See TARTARY.)
In the psychedelic days of 1970, the more daring experimenters used to remove
The Tower, the Nine and Ten of Swords, the Reaper and other disagreeable cards
from the deck. Then they would pass out (not necessarily at random) the
remainder, one by one, to those whom they met during the course of a few days.
Whichever card you received was yours to keep because it was your fortune. Any
left-over cards at the end of the "experiment" were the Reader's fortune.
Since we keep forgetting even the very survival lessons and pragmatics we've
learned through bitter misfortune and ordeal, once we memorize the arcana, its
22 terse encapsulizations of perennial wisdom will serve as permanent and ready
memory-joggers for all occasions thereafter.
Madame Blavatsky points out that anyone can visit the British Museum and read
the signs of the tarot easily enough in the ancient Babylonian Cylinders, the
Chaldean antediluvian rhombs, referred to by De Mirville as the "rotating globes
of Hecate." The cards that fortune-tellers shuffle today are far, far removed
from their origins and most of the meanings ascribed to them are but modern
fairy tales...
Meanwhile, we are beset by a maze of false trails. According to Idries Shah, the
14th Century Italian word, Tarocchi, derives from Arabic turuq, i.e., the (4)
"PATHS" (corresponding to the 4 suits) and the Tarot is therefore of Sufic
rather than Judaic origins. The Judaic elements are therefore, according to him,
superimposed Since, however, in known history, both the Qabalah and the Tarot
arose simultaneously within the Italian-Jewish community in the 13-14th Century,
its Jewish significance cannot be discounted. The Hebrew connection is clear
from the number of the trumps alone (22), which is the number of letters in the
alphabet -- each of which, in Qabalah, is a facet of Briah, or "Creation."
Moreover, the most distinguished scholars insist it is far older than two
millennia, hence the supposition of its Egyptian origin as The Book of Thoth,
which we can also support by various etymological clues.
In any case, although Orthodox Jews tend to downplay any connection, the trumps
are now fairly well associated with the 22 pathways between the sephiroth of the
Qabalah as the Ze'ir Anpin (lit. "microcosm"), i.e., the letters of the
alphabet, with Malkuth, form the "language" of Qabalah. As time has passed, the
Tarot has become more and more mystical. In the Middle Ages, the suits merely
stood for the Military (Swords), the Clergy (Cups), the Intellectuals (Wands)
and the Merchants (Coins).
There are, in all, 32 paths, just as the brain, divided into three parts,
spreads through the body in 32 pairs of nerves. The sephiroth themselves
comprise the first ten "paths" and the remaining 22 are the links of the Atus
(major trumps) themselves, the Fool being pathway 11, the Magician pathway 12,
The High Priestess pathway 13, etc. The paths, as we've seen, are the 22 letters
of the Hebrew Alphabet, which are the building blocks of Creation.
193
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Crowley's Equinox (Liber ccxxxi) contains the best encapsulization of the Major
Arcana that I know. It is based on the ten sephiroth of the Tree of Life. He
divides them into nine groups, i.e., four groups of three and five groups of two
and, if I may take some liberties in their ordinality, will explain them as
something like the following:
1. LIGHT -- in which no evil is possible -- has three forms. They are The
Fool, in whom "the Wisdom of God is seen as foolishness amongst men"; The
Hermit, who bears his own lantern; and The Moon, which is "Khephra about to
rise." (KETHER.)
4. LIFE -- is the mother of God (The Empress). Her son is killed (The Hanged
Man) in order for her to become the Bride of God (The World). (CHESED.)
10. This is the material realm of Malkuth which begins the next lowest
kingdom, being its Kether, and hence is a less perfect repetition of the above.
In view of the above, it is possible that A.C. switches the places of The
Emperor and The Star in order to deliver the world through Purification of Fire.
However, to call Temperance "Art" may be useful, but to rename Strength "Lust"
seems perverted, unless he means that evil must not be resisted (as Christ
commands).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TAROT, IMPLEMENTS OF
194
The best explanation of the sacred objects on The Magician's table can be found
in Paul Christian's Histoire de la Magie (Kirkup and Shaw translation, page 95):
"The goblet signifies the mixture of passions contributing to happiness or
misfortune, according to whether we are their masters or their slaves. The sword
symbolizes labor, the striving that overcomes obstacles and the tests that pain
makes us undergo. The shekel is the image of aspirations fulfilled, works
accomplished, the apex of power attained by perseverance and will-power."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TARTARY
Along with Tibet, one of the sacred lands. Not to be confused with Tartarus. In
Greek mythology Tartarus is the bottomless abyss beneath Hades.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
"Thou art that." The Hindu mantra that links the yogin to the object of his
concentration (supposedly Brahma, but not necessarily). It is an extremely
powerful formula that can be super-dangerous if misused or misunderstood.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TATHATA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TATTWA
The four Hindu elements (See AKASHA): earth, Prithivi (yellow square); Water,
Apas (silver crescent); Air, Vayu (blue hexagon or circle); Fire, Tejas (red
triangle). The colors and geometrics for Apas and Tejas are self evident.
Prithivi is yellow to suggest the ochres and greenery of earth, it is a four-
sided figure to indicate the fourfold states of matter (solid, liquid, gas,
plasm) and three dimensions of space plus one dimension of time. Vayu is blue to
suggest the sky and the color of reason. Since air is dispersive it is
characterized by a circle or hexagram -- in order to demonstrate its progress
from the center outward in all directions.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TAU
The Greek letter T. A word sacred to the Atlanteans. It was used as a cross in
the early days of Xtian persecution to avoid identification. Later adopted,
sometimes, by the Franciscans. Since its upper line is amputated, it indicates a
true sacrifice on the part of the wearer, who has renounced even his own
Salvation in order to devote himself permanently to the transformation of Hell.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TAURUS
195
(April 21 - May 20). The fixed earth sign of the Zodiac called "the Bull"
because the Babylonians who invented the sign associated the bull with the
beginning of spring. It is the Venusian Impulse, the Eros as opposed to Thanatos
(Scorpio). In Egypt, Apis the Bull was an avatar of Osiris. The chief
characteristics of Taurus are stubbornness, love of the arts and hedonism, which
last is no doubt the reason that Gautama Buddha chose this as the sign of his
birth with its Karma of Buddhistic renunciation and austerity. As one of the
tetramorphs Taurus incorporates the lesson of velle, "to will."
Some famous Taureans are: Adolf Hitler, Leonardo da Vinci, Hirohito, Wm.
Randolph Hearst, Fred Astaire, Theodore Roszak, Shakespeare, Cromwell, Freud,
Orson Welles, Tchaikovsky, Irving Berlin, Gary Cooper, Eva Peron, Harry Truman,
Daniel Berrigan, John Wilkes Booth, Socrates, Machiavelli, Florence Nightingale,
Dante Gabriel Rossetti, L. Frank Baum, Malcom X.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TAV
The last Hebrew letter. Its numerical value is 400. In the Book of Thoth it is
number 21, the Final Enigma: The World or "Kingdom." Its left leg is pulled out
a bit as the result of an encounter with the evil Kingdom of Darkness, next to
which Tav stands as the last outpost of the magical letters. (See Dr. Berg's The
Power of Aleph Beth.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TECHNIKRYM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TECHNALOPIA
The belief that, somehow, more efficient agricultural methods, more efficient
scientific crime prevention, substitutions for fossil fuels, space exploration,
etc. will solve the problem of eco-imbalance, population, etc. and prevent the
demise of mankind. What this amounts to is a refusal to acknowledge the steady
decline of the world's standard of living owing to diminishing room and
resources.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TELEOLOGY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
196
TELEPHEME
Telepathic message.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TELEPLASTY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TELESPHOROS
Psychic convalescence.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TELESTIC/TELIC
Denoting a final end or purpose. > "Telestic madness" (Platonic term) = mania
for mysticism.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TEMPERANCE
Arcanum xiv, "The Lower Self," lettered Samech, ruled by Sagittarius. Ouspensky
called this "Time," because of its etymology, no doubt (from temperare, to
measure, to order ult. tempus.) Time is entirely a human preoccupation and
obsession. Ultimately, it comes down to the attempt to reconcile the two
"chariots": evolution (which is the individual) and incarnation (which is the
personality).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TEMURAH
Hebrew for "substitution." Another method of gematria. The order of the alphabet
is displaced in order to obtain new words:
kaph yod teth cheth zayin vav heh daled gimel beth aleph. lamed mem nun samek
ayin peh tzaddi qoph resh shin tav.
Thus: IHVH>M-TZ-P-(TZ) "watchtower."
TMURAH>EIF-G-(TZ) "where doth it rise?"
------------------------------------------------------------------------
(Chinese) "The Lamp of the Western Way" or the system of the Academy of
M/magic(k)al Arts.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TEONANACATL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TERAPHIM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TETRAMORPH
198
Omnipotence, Immortality and Nothingness. To utter the word is to create the
world, but to experience it backward is to return to God. (See QUATERNITY.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TEUTATES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THANTIFAXATH
The final tunnel symbolizes the connection between the double universes,
Universe A and Universe B.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THAUMATURGY
The working of miracles, natural magic, sorcery, etc. for their own sake, as
opposed to Theurgy.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THEANTHROPY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THEATRE
From Greek: "A place for seeing" thea and thauma/thaomal, "wonder" or "magic,"
devoted to mysteries and initiations.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THELEMA
This is the Greek word for "will," the major tool of all M/magic(k). Crowley
borrowed it from Rabelais' Gargantua et Pantagruel, in which the Abbé de
Théléme's motto was "Fay ce que voudras" (Do what thou wilt).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THEMIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THEO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THEOSOPHY
Society founded in 1875 by H.P. Blavatsky and Col. H.S. Olcott. Immediate divine
illumination. Spiritual insight is superior to empirical knowledge.
Specifically, Theosophy is the revelation of HPB that incorporates Gnosticism,
Zoroastrianism, Platonism, Hinduism and Buddhism. Theosophy proposes "four
bodies": the physical, the astral, the esthetic and the Self.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THERIODE
An animal template, genetic code or the like for reproducing a living animal.
Such records of potential life-forms are more easily stored than actual living
creatures taking up zoo-space.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THERIOMORPH
Household icons of animals. Deer antlers store psychic energies and keep out
negative spirits. Owl ornaments are supposed to guard against fire. Other
taxidermic figures serve a multitude of functions.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THEURGY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THIRD EYE
Ocellus frontis. Today, generally regarded as the pineal gland, vestigial organ
serving an unknown sense, formerly believed to be the seat of the soul.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THOTH
Tehuti (Djehuti, Theutys), the Egyptian equivalent of Hermes. God of the Age
after Aquarius, (Age of Capricorn, 2000 years hence). He is the "Keeper of
knowledge," stable sage and arbiter of the gods, their constant advisor, and
wizard. It was his magical formulae that the dead need to know in order to pass
through the underworld unscathed.
The Book of Thoth (which Crowley calls the Tarot), is supposedly the source of
all wisdom. Thoth is far more than the God of language. It is in the invention
of language that both the phenomenological and the material worlds are born. But
language is the connection we make with the millions of things in the universe
and, similarly, Thoth is the connection or Fohat of the Gods to their creative
acts. He is the neter of the neteru.
200
In Egyptian mythology, Thoth is the product of a homosexual union between Seth
and Horus.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THOUERIS
Or Taueret, Ta-Urt. The highly decorated and ornate Hippo goddess of fertility
who is actually an aspect of Isis. She is not only the goddess of pregnancy, but
the magical creative principle in all things. She presides over the difficult
births of all kinds of fragile things.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THRONES
In Ptolemaic astrology they are the exaltations of the planets (also called
"chariots"). The detriments were called Phylakai or "Prisons" or Idiothronel.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
THURIBLE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TIME
Adeste, O Tempora Omnia! ("Be now, All Ye Times!") According to Merlin and
others, mortals tend to face the opposite direction from that which time
actually flows, as when we are seated in a train facing away from the engine.
But it is the frozen past that unfolds, not the blazing future. We move away
from becoming into the permanence of that which finally is. We alter
continuously the shape of our history as we live it backwards. We watch the
world recede rapidly as we move into the Nothingness of the Void and are
swallowed up by it. However, this old linear view of time is abruptly being
replaced by a new understanding of time as an exradiating web with ourselves at
the center. The 20th Century has become the most time-obsessed period in
history, and thus one of the most confused.
Kenneth Grant defines time as "subjectivity" and space as objectivity," the
future as "implicit" and the past as "explicit." Despite the eye-opening
insights these definitions provide, they still present time as having concrete
existence.
FTL speeds flatten time to zero because light released only as electrons takes
quantum leaps in the evolution of matter. In other words, electrons have to be
released in order for matter to evolve (i.e., change), in fact, in order for
matter to exist, period. Existence is a kind of "fire" or transmutation. And you
know (see REALITY), photons appear only when someone actually observes
(interacts with) them, because Being and Mind are one. We can't separate the
four elements (earth, air, fire, water) -- so if you could succeed in extracting
"water" or "fire" you'd wind up with nothing at all. But part of "earth" (the
4th part) is also earth, that is, an infinite replification (hologram) of itself
-- boxes inside boxes in infinite regression; and every part is exactly alike,
each particle is the entirety.
Inside the holo-mind, the stoppage of time is a play-back of Zeno's Paradox.
That is, it decreases by infinite halves, except that one can no longer step
out, is locked into halving. This is how annihilation is possible... but we
digress.
Time is not some abstract "duration" imposed from outside but is built into the
structure of things. There is a secret known to very few initiates, that one of
the elements is fictitious, i.e., an abstraction devised merely to connect the
201
others. Our postmodern problem is that we can't decide whether that's Time or
Space, because they called it simply "Air." I guess we can work backward -- the
nature of air, unlike that of the other elements, is for molecules in its medium
to repel other molecules. Earth doesn't repel. It attracts. Water doesn't repel,
it allows molecules to pass across one another's paths without obstruction, to
flow. Fire doesn't repel, it fuses and spreads. Air alone moves towards
separation and disintegration, as the present constantly disengages from past
moment to past moment. (Future never does come into existence, does it? Tomorrow
literally never comes. It is a physical impossibility).
The "duration" of an ice cube is not really it's "fourth" dimension, but simply
a description of water moving from one form (ice) to another (water) and it is
at "no time" anything other than H2O. The "duration" of a life is almost
meaningless. What has "endured"? The mewling babe or the grizzled old hunchback?
What I'm getting at is that duration is such a philosophical term that sub
specie aetemitatis it eventually ceases to have any pragmatic importance.
Well, then, if there is no future, how did I get here from the Past? The
billions scream for illusions. And through the medium of herbs and drugs, the
minds of ages past, present and potential can and do intertwine. It is called
the principle of bilocalism, or being in two places at the same "time." As I lie
upon my lion rug, dreaming of the 20th Century in my hut with the crossed spears
over the doorway, I have entered one of the spirit worlds where time no longer
counts. In the same way, I can entrance myself into "the year 1999" or (with a
final twist) the year "2013" and this sorcerors have done since any of us can
remember. But there is a wall that begins to thicken as we approach the 21st
Century. Beyond this it soon becomes impossible to pass (apart from the 2013
"bubble"). That outer wall has been known to exist, since the seers of Egypt and
Babylon first perceived it, thousands of years ago. It is the limit of this Aeon
-- and it is a ring-pass-not of dense, dark flame.
Of course it's all an illusion. There is no future. What we're looking at is
always the present. Infinite knowledge? Well, yes, obviously omniscience has
always been there. All you have to do is walk into it. And, yes -- the crossing
of infinite parallel lines -- all outcomes equally probable. But, again, it's
the "improbable" that always has the edge. The world will actually "end" long
before 1999 or 2012 -- the "Implosion" is building up and up. Those are only the
uttermost limits. The Three are already at hand.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TIMESCAPE ZERO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TIPHARETH
The sixth qabalistic power-zone of the Tree of Life, stands for "Beauty" and is
the abode of the Sun and the Holy Guardian Angel. It is symbolized by Osiris.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TODAY'S MARTYRS
Victims of plague and persecution in the latterday years of the 20th Century.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
202
TOHU V' BOHU
"Chaos and Confusion," the primordial state before Creation. Tohu can be equated
with the evil Babylonian goddess, Tiamat.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TOTEM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TOTOK
A New Ireland medium, shaman or paraclete, who, like Hermes, the Grecian
psychopomp, holds a serpent in either hand. His face is painted white, which
links him to the gods and his eyes are shut to show that he is in contact with
the dead and the past. His face also suggests an inner perichoresis linking him
from the 19th to the 20th Century (Time-travel from past to future). His penis
is painted red in order to maintain earth and life connection. Its black tip is
intended to contrast in balance with the white face.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TOWER, THE
Arcanum xvi, lettered Peh (the mouth, or speech). Apart from the obvious
ejaculating phallic representations and the usual description of this card as
the wages of pride, its real meaning is the Tower of Babel, whence derives
language, which is both our power and our frustration.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TRANSCENDENTALISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TRANSFORMIST HYPOTHESIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TRANSPLUTONIAN
TRANSSATURNIAN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TRIAX
The proposed "fifth suit" of Tarot used by Drnec and Lanphere in their Viennese
Deva deck (there is also a 23rd Trump called "The Separator," thus making 93
cards in all). Triax represents the akashic tattwa, or etheric realm in which
spiritual events take place. Triax is an abstract symbol representing a
tripartite moebius strip. It represents the link between the lower three
(emotional, physical and astral) bodies and the upper three etheric bodies
(mental, spiritual and divine).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TRINITY, CHRISTIAN
These 3 facts are symbolized in Hinduism by Brahma, Vishnu and Shiva; in Egypt
by the Uas, the Ank and the Djed and in Xtianity by "Father, Son and Holy
Ghost." In my own system, I sometimes refer to them symbolically as Abraxas,
Khronos and Isis.
Spiritus Sanctus est Spiritus in Materia. Id Est Aqua Hydor Theon Hypostatis
Metres. The sanctified spirit is that which has been made into matter, that is
put into water. Mary impregnated by the Holy Ghost is just another way of saying
that many are conceived naturally. To be baptized is to be born into the body,
i.e., to manifest.
Speaking out of the "Holy Ghost," which is apparently what all masses,
communions, oblations and sacrifices refer to, any sexual act itself joins or
reaffirms the "hologram" to the Unity. In the embrace of another, the Holy Ghost
re-connects, in a physical way, its separations. The two, formerly separate and
opposed, have created a third thing, which is their union. (What happens on the
physical level is simple reproduction and is of no metaphysical concern, except
204
insofar as it paralyzes spiritual "reproduction"). The Xtians prefer to do all
this symbolically, what with their "brides of Christ" and all. Moreover, when we
speak of Mary as "conceived by the Holy Ghost," we simply mean metaphorically
that she has conceived "naturally." The Satanists, therefore, assume
(incorrectly) that overt, gross public copulation or multiple orgies constitute
a defilement of Christ, when in fact, the Son is hardly involved with sex at any
level and the Holy Ghost, actually, is exalted by "publicity." The true "sin
against the Holy Ghost" is not blasphemy per se, but commercial advertising
(including Church propaganda) or special interest exploitation which seeks to
use, abuse, pollute, destroy, subvert or pervert the unity, ecology or
collective holo-mind/body/spirit of the world for the sake of personal, private
gain.
The "sacrifice of the child" -- that is, not the actual, living child, but
merely the protoplasm of conception --which is what takes place in redirected or
deferred heterosexual orgasm (can we refer to this as "tantric" sex?) should be
especially appealing to us in today's crisis of pathological Mega-Birth. That
is, it has much needed Neo-Catharist overtones. But the creation of a Moonchild
(described by Crowley, Grant, Parsons, et al.) would apparently be the opposite
goal, resulting in the "psychic foetus" of an astral entity.
We mustn't overlook the meaning of homosexuality and masturbation, however,
since these lead to culminations without any question of issue from outset, and
so, constitute refinements on sex magick. Grant, in his Nightside of Eden says
that the "qliphotic" version of Arcanum XIII, "Death," is sodomy. In other
words, sex which avoids the production of life is absolutely restricted to
physical re-union of Self with Other. And the only other "physical" way we can
"reunite" is to pass through the gates of Death. Thus heterosexual "tantric" sex
and homosexuality are exactly the same thing so far as the physical plane goes.
The union of homosexuality, however, extends beyond Eros into brotherhood and
thus is closer to the "spirit" of the "Holy Ghost."
Since the union of self with other is specifically what we're concerned with,
masturbation would seem to be pointless until we recall that the purpose of
union is not orgasm. Orgasm merely affirms the authenticity of the union.
Whether the "other" is another person (or thing!) or one's own body, scarcely
matters. Mind and body are reunited in all cases. The physical is simply the
mirror of the spiritual. For the solitary union of self with other, the orgasm
is not just the ultimate and most subtle link, its the only link between the
physical and spiritual planes. As a device for astral impregnation, moonchildren
aside, masturbation obviously ought to be considerably more effective than sex
with a physical partner (provided it doesn't degenerate into sense-
gratification). But as a substitute for "transcendental sodomy" it is much less
satisfactory.
Finally, I'm bound to say that those who have closed and forever locked the
sexual door may still be able to unite self and other in a number of asexual,
exotic and abstract ways, some of which may have a certain limited but unique
value.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TSUFLIFU
The 28th kala (perhaps meaning "The Honeycomb") is the Emperor rendered as a
penis, as the ultimate power of the world.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TUAT
------------------------------------------------------------------------
205
TUISCO
Teutonic hero, father of Mannu ("man"), whence sprang the three Germanic tribes:
Ingaevones, Istaevones and Hermiones.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TULKU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TULPA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TUNNELS OF SET
These are the 22 reverse Tarot paths on the Tree of Death, as proposed by
Crowley and expanded by Grant, who calls them kalas ("exudations" or
"secretions"). Crowley refers to them as "the Prisons of the Qliphoth" as
distinguished from "the Houses of Mercury." They are ruled by orders of
qliphotic guardians and are not so much opposites of Qabalistic trumps as
perversions, blasphemies or distortions of them:
True Path Tunnel of Set Inhabitants or Qliphoth
11. The Fool AMPRODIAS Sylphs, Fairies, Vampires
12. The Magician BARATCHIAL
13. The High Priestess GARGOPHIAS Lemurs
14. The Empress DAGDAGIEL The Sow of Venus (Babylon)
15. The Star HEMETHTERITH The Behemiron
16. The Hierophant URIENS The Adimiron
17. The Lovers ZAMRADIEL The Tzalalimiron
18. The Chariot CHARACITH The Shichiririon
19. Strength TEMPHIOTH The Schalcbiron
20. The Hermit YAMATU The Tzaphiriron
21. The Wheel of Fortune KURGASIAX
22. Justice LAFCURSIAX The A'abirion
23. The Hanged Man MALKUNOFAT The Deep Ones
24. Death NIANTIEL Scorpion, wolf, beetle
25. Temperance SAKSAKSALIM The Nechashiron
26. The Devil A'ANO'NIN The Dagdagiron
27. The Tower PARFAXITAS
28. The Emperor TZUFLIFU The Furies (Erinyes)
29. The Moon QULIELFI The Nashimiron
30. The Sun RAFLIFU Will-o'-the-wisps
31. Judgment SHALICU
32. The World THANTIFAXATH Larvae, ghouls
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TURIYA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
206
TWENTY-SEVENTH PARALLEL
The terrestrial "mystery" latitude engirdling the earth and comprising the
Egyptian pyramids, the Mexican Zona de Silencio, the Bermuda Triangle and the
holy cities of Tibet.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TWILIGHT ICON
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TYCHISM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
TYPHON
Earth demon destroyed by Zeus. Father of Chimaera. Another name for Set (Slayer
of Osiris). In the Wheel of Fortune, he is the destructive force of existence
related to Capricorn (the culmination of Pisces' dissolution). God of evil
winds. Typhon is the origin of the word, "typhoon."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
U
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The staff of the Egyptian Gods, cut from a living branch to indicate the miracle
of manifestation. It was gilded and the top carved into an ass's head with
long, deaf ears, to indicate the evil and ignorance that quickly accompany the
coming into existence. (See ANKH.) Uas is fire; Nebet is water; Ankh is air and
Djed is earth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
UFOLOGY
------------------------------------------------------------------------
UGGAE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
UNDINES
------------------------------------------------------------------------
UNION OF OPPOSITES
One of the greater secrets of occult wisdom and useful in overcoming all
adversities. The initiate must realize that everything exists on a line leading
to its opposite. Balance is nothing more than acting with an awareness of this
opposition. Therefore, we should see the unpleasantnesses of life not as
obstacles to avoid, but as welcome challenges to be transformed. Thus sickness
becomes health, poverty becomes wealth, ugliness becomes beauty, the ordinary
becomes the extraordinary, etc. It is only by entering with full consent into
the depths of the negative, that we can transform our consciousness or thinking
and thereby transmute the thing itself. It is only when we stiffen and resist
that we lend strength to the enemy. By flowing into and with the challenge,
which is the way of water, we are led back out of hell to deliverance.
208
When the positive is joined to the negative, both are neutralized and proceed in
fusion to become a completely new and resplendent entity, a zygote of the
spirit.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
UR OF THE CHALDEES
From Hebrew, Aour Chasdim, "The Light of the Magicians." (Ur was also the name
of the ancient Sumerian city, located in Chaldea). The word "Chaldean" is still
synonymous with "magician" or "astrologer."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
URANUS
The planetary ruler of Aquarius and the Aquarian Age. Uranus is the God of
sudden change and idiosyncrasy who dwells at the heart of routine and
conformity. The years 1912-1919 and 1995-2002 mark the boundaries of Uranus and
Aquarius for our time.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
URIENS
The 16th kala of the dark tarot. Its meaning is unclear. Perhaps the undermining
of the feminine correspondence to the Pope.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
UZZA
The Venus of the Bedouins. One of the important three Gods deposed by Mohammad.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
V
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VACUUM
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VAHANAS
The five vehicles or animals that carry the Boddhic manifestations: Elephant
(sense of touch), Peacock (sense of taste), Horse (sight). The Creator Buddha's
beast is the Flying Dragon, i.e., creation by thunder (sound). Garuda (sense of
209
smell) is a mythical bird who brings the elixir of immortality to Vishnu's
mother, then is captured by the Nagas, which are the serpents of death.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VAJRA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VALENTINUS
An early Gnostic, born 100 C.E. Because our minds have lost their self-
knowledge, we live in a self-created world that is lacking in integrity. Only
the enlightenment of a Gnosis can rescue us from illusion, not the body is
redeemed, but the inner spirit. We don't need salvation, but to be transformed
by Gnosis. The sickness of the world is ignorance. Wholeness is not to be found
in matter or mind, but in pneuma.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VALIS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VALLEY OF THORNS
HPB's term for the material world in which man has been exiled.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VAMPIRE
A demon, succubus, incubus, bat, zombie or night-thing between being and non-
being who lives off the stolen "blood" of the living. Such blood can be literal
blood, divine "Ambrosia," soma, physical energy, menses, semen, life itself or
merely the mind or psyche. In languages around the world, words for "cruelty",
"red" and "blood" have similar roots: Ainu fure ("red"); Latin burrus
("reddish"); Albanian vras ("hurt"; "kill"); Finnish verta ("blood"); Serbian
vampir (vampire); Turkish uber ("witch"); Hungarian vé'r ("blood") and so on.
In his novel, Bat Wing, Sax Rohmer describes a particularly intelligent and
horrible Central American vampire bat that has learned how to crawl under the
mosquito netting of its sleeping donor.
Vampires, along with other automata and hell-beings created by the sick
fantasies of human invention, swell in the qliphotic regions of the nightside of
the Tree of Life. The magician crossing the qliphotic path of Characith (whose
kala is cunnilingus) is warned to avoid lingering here too long lest he become
an addict and vampire. In some black magic practices, the priestess is
sacrificed and her soul turned into a familiar for the magician. Here the line
between vampire and zombie has been almost deliberately blurred.
210
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VARE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VARUNA
One of the Vedic deities, the God of Water -- symbolizes "the Waters of Space."
In the Agastya Samhita are instructions for building a dry-cell battery. Liquid
energy, called Mitra Varuna ("Friendly Water God") is produced. Water can
thereby be divided into Prana-vayu and Udana-vayu. Vayu means "air." Thus the
Ancient Hindus correctly analyzed water as the mixture of two gases. Prana is
the life principle (so must correspond to oxygen, which is essential to life)
and Udana means "upward breathing" (so must correspond to hydrogen, which is the
lightest element).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VENUS
The planet not merely of enjoyment, but also of appreciation, gratitude and
allegiance. Without Venus there is no reason for living. 19th Century occultists
asserted that Venus, the planet, was inhabited by an advanced entity. Such
Venusians, however, could not be humanoid, since the planet's temperature is
well above suitability for human life.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VIDYA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
(Sk. "flying vehicle.") Blavatsky writes about the Atlantideans having viwân
vidya or "knowledge of aëronautics and travel in their flying vehicles.'
Elsewhere we hear of ancient Hindu vimanas flown by the gods.
211
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VIRGO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VISHNU INCARNATION
One of the Gods of the Hindu Trinity (Trimurti), who volunteered for incarnation
in order to help the righteous and bring them to enlightenment. Some say there
have been eleven so far and the 12th is the coming incarnation, which will take
place in this century, whilst others claim it to have taken place, 2000 years
ago with the birth of X. Prithivi (earth) is supposed to have been the first
avatar. HPB gives the ten subsequent avatars in this progression:
2. Kurm-Avatar: (Tortoise).
3. Varaha: (Boar).
10. Here is the coming avatar, choosing to manifest as horse or rider, Kalki,
playing the role both of destroyer and savior. The Kalki-Avataram is absolutely
the last incarnation. Kalki's hooves come to pulverize everything that has been
built over the ages.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VOODOO
(Or VOUDON; from Tovodun, the Dahomean gods.) The West African religion together
with its transplanted form in Haiti and elsewhere in the Caribbean and Gulf. It
derives from Dahomey or Yoruban vodun, "god" or "spirit" and the chief spirits
are Legba, Ogoun, Ghede and, in the new world, Baron Samedi, Piquant and
Cimitère. Rites are said to involve serpent worship, sexual magic, cannibalism
212
and corpses (see ZOMBIE). Another name for spirits, those that actually possess
the worshippers, are the loa.
According to Michael Bertiaux, latterday priest or Hungan, Voodoo is not an evil
religion and is much misunderstood. He heads La Couleuvre Noire, or modern
"Black Serpent" Voodoo Cult working with the so-called "Ophidian Current" and
"the leapers of the paths" on the other side of the Tree of Life. The latter
practice is associated with Juju, another "modern" African religion.
Esoteric Voodoo is actually a highly practical procedure for leading us into
making contact with our deepest levels of being and most ancient modes of
consciousness, through the dark spirits of the universe that operate on the same
frequencies.
Michael Bertiaux's Voudon Gnostic Workbook is probably the most comprehensive
and illuminating contemporary work on the subject, both from the practical and
from the philosophical, mystical points of view. It ranges in mind from the
basic desires of the most ignorant levels of society to the esoteric
abstractions of the heights of untrammeled consciousness.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VOODOO DOLL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VOYNICH MANUSCRIPT
The notebook of Roger Bacon, written in a cipher which has so far resisted all
efforts to break it, since it is unknown which language he used (English, Latin,
Greek, Hebrew, Arabic, etc.) and because many letters employ the same symbol in
the cipher.
There are those who believe that genius has its own fraternity and speaks its
own language. The cipher is difficult for those who seek a consistent style of
concealment -- but the problem may be solved, not by learning how to read it,
but by discovering how it is written. The best way to break the cipher is to
imitate it as closely as possible.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
VRIL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
V.V.V.V.V.
Crowley's motto as temple master: Vi Veri Vniversum Vivus Vici -- "While still
living, I have conquered the universe by dint of truth." These V's appear as
half the digits of a 10-digit clock with an "Eye of Horus" at the center. (See
HOUSES OF MERCURY.)
213
They are referred to as "the footprints of the camel," the camel of the High
Priestess, that is, which is the desert abyss that the magician must cross for
himself. For Crowley, whose alter nomen was Perdurabo, this was an underscoring
of his persistence.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
W
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WABI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
The other day I found myself replying in this way to a fairly common request for
more information on magic wands that chelas submitted to the Academy of
M/magic(k)al Arts:
215
more suitable than paper as a carrier. And if your wand must be of metal, then
gold is best.
Finally, on the most pragmatic level (earth of fire), the wand is one's oath.
The Word herewith must express the Will, hence the mystic name of the
Probationer is the expression of his highest will.
You might think that the more wands you have, the better, and that is true to
some extent. But after accumulating four or five of them, they begin to be a
burden to carry around. You may have more powers, but you also begin to attract
more challenges. Four wands indicate established strength without competition,
but after that, if you start collecting more and more wands, you'll have to go
on acquiring more still, in order to meet the new obligations associated with
these power levels. Ultimately you will either become monarch of the unwieldy
things or the inundated sorcerer's apprentice. At that point your
responsibilities will outnumber your privileges. The King of Wands is executor
of power, engaged continuously in the fulfillment of endless obligations.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WATCHERS
------------------------------------------------------------------------
In Old Persian astronomy, the four "Royal Stars" which were at that time (3000
B.C.) standing guard at the equinoxes and solstices: Aldebaran, Watcher of the
East; Regulus, Watcher of the North; Antares, watcher of the West; Fomalhaut,
Watcher of the South. Today's equivalents would probably be Regulus, Alcoyne,
Albireo and Bungula.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WATTS, ALAN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WEI-WU-WEI
(Chinese: "Non-Action Action.") This is the truth as revealed by "The 10th Man"
(Wei-Wu-Wei being the name of its author): you can never "cognize" anything that
216
has any "independent nature of its own" if it is not part of what you yourself
already are.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WEST
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WHALE
Symbolizes the world; its huge, unconscious "better" side or "healthy" nature. A
whale washed ashore dead is an omen of uncontrollable disaster.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WHEEL OF FORTUNE
Destiny and Karma. The 10th and central Arcanum, circumscribed by the tetramorph
and lettered Caph. It is the pathway between Chesed and Netzach. The wheel is a
mandala, enabling the magus to master the polarities within himself. It may also
be equated with the wheel of Samsara (birth, death and rebirth). Fortune tellers
assign great happiness to this card (presumably because it is ruled by Jupiter).
It also represents the Wheel of the Tarot itself. Caph is "the palm of the hand"
and the number ten refers to the ten fingers, leading some interpreters to
conclude that the wheel is really a potter's wheel (in the hands of the
Creator). Others interpret this as meaning that our fortunes lie in the palms of
our hands. Clearly, the meanings of the wheel spin out in all directions.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WIDDERSHINS/WITHERSHINS
To the left, contrary to the sun, "counterclockwise." (See DEOSIL.) This is the
direction of negativity, evil and witchcraft. Operations conducted in this
direction enlist the power of Satan.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WILL
Another word for persistence and maintained attention. Will is one of the two
natural human powers for altering reality (the other is imagination). When faced
with an insoluble problem or great odds against us, it is the Will alone that
leads us through to solution and victory. As the imagination is the power of the
mind through understanding and enlightenment, the Will is the way of material
action. There is no will without physical effort of some kind exerted over
physical phenomena.
Colin Wilson says of the will:
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WORLD, THE
The final Arcanum, lettered Tav. The dancing figure is the Divine Hermaphrodite,
uniting all the opposites. It represents the "Kether" of the lower Kingdom and
is the first step of Initiation, as well as the revelation of the Eleusian
mystery. The link between Malkuth and Yesod, occurs on the middle pillar, where
also appear Daäth and the solar center (Tiphareth). It is the link to the astral
plane.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WU
Chinese word. Having ethereal, numenous value wholly apart from any obvious
historicity, practicality or esthetic quality. May be found in "stones rejected
by the builder" or in the midst of trash. Also associated with Satori.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
WU WEI
Taoist non-assertion of self. The path of non-action. The origin of the idea
implicit in "going with the flow."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
X
218
------------------------------------------------------------------------
X, XTIAN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
X-FACTOR
Colin Wilson's term for the special energy or force beyond the four natural
forces (electromagnetism, gravity, strong and weak nuclear forces). Various
authorities call this occult power by different names; Mesmer's animal
magnetism, Bulwer-Lytton's Vril, Crowley's Will, Freud's Libido, Jung's
synchronicity, Reich's Orgone, etc.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
XANADU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
XAPHAN
------------------------------------------------------------------------
XIBALBA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
XUL
Sumerian for "evil." Xul is also the 6th Mayan month (see MAYAN CALENDAR.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Y
------------------------------------------------------------------------
219
YAMA
Lord of the Underworld, our first father and the angel of our death. Yama is the
Hindu equivalent of Pluto, the guardian of Hell. But along with the dreaded Yama
is the even more intimidating Yamataka, Yama's destroyer who is both a
bodhisattva and an aspect of Shiva. He is black, has many heads, eyes, legs and
arms bearing mystic implements and human skulls. He is engaged in intercourse
with a female bodhisattva, a concubine/succubus. Another of his names is Varja-
Bhairava ("Terrible Lightning") and he is the protective God of the Tibetan
temple of Gelugpa.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YAMATU
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YANTRA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YESOD
RAW: "The first astral plane." This is the 9th power chakra of the Tree of Life
and the link between the Moon and the sublunary worlds. It is called the
"Foundation." (Grant also calls it the "Fundament," because it acts as an
excreter.) Yesod is the lunar illumination of the Ophidian Current and the abode
of Set. It is the most secret depth of the personality.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YEVO
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YEZIDI
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YOD
This is one of the power letters of the Hebrew alphabet. Being the first letter
of the tetragrammaton (YHVH), it is the number of the creative fire. Out of this
primeval iota, all further letters evolve, thus it parallels that out of which
the entire plenum derives. that is, it is the phallus created by God to produce
light. Its value is ten, but its tarot number is 9, The Hermit, which reminds us
that, after all, there is only one being and that being can only be oneself,
alone in the universe, surrounded by the mirrors of the illusion of many. Yods
are sent forth out of Yahveh, accompanying all descents and ascents of spirit
into and out of matter. Each yod is itself the divine spark that originates each
separate thing in the world. Within the material world there are also secondary
yods, as each thing produces energy flow from itself.
Yod, apart from being the 10th letter of the Hebrew alphabet, represents yadaim,
or "hands," and is therefore sometimes given as the totality of the ten numbers
or sephiroth.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YOG SOTHOTH
In the mythos of The Necronomicon, this is the most repellant of all the semi-
entities which haunt the infamous 11th Pathway. Grant describes his color as a
gangrenous shade of green. He has no upper skull at all, merely a bloated and
foetid mess that is his maggot-festering, naked brain. A madly gazing, giant's
"Cyclops" eye beringed by octopoidal palpi stares out of a face slimy and
writhing with entrails over shark teeth below. His gross, warty body rises
tyrannosaurus-like out of the primordial muck.
His nauseating undulation suggesting a monotonous and blasphemous coitus, he is
in fact the "Aeon" or "Yuga," i.e., the monstrous, forbidden union of Set and
221
Thoth. Further sexual intercourse between Choronzon and Set forms a doorway
between our world and the Hell of the Demons. H. P. Lovecraft refers to him as
"the noxious Yog-Sothoth who froths as primal slime in nuclear chaos beyond the
nethermost outposts of space and time!" The "soul-eater," Yog-Sut-Thoth, Kenneth
Grant believes, is the Ibis of the Yesodic lunar Abyss, the sentinel of the
between-worlds Doorway, the very portal itself, in fact, and the link between
the Firmaments, above and below. Yog-Sut-Thoth (333) and Choronzon (333),
moreover, are summoned by the same voice, for they are reciprocal aspects of one
another. Locked together, in sodomy, the two form The Beast, 666. The "Beast" is
really an historical occurrence, rather than a mere entity. It is a counter-
swirl in the Ether, following in the wake of positive creation, that allows
atavistic manifestations by default.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YOGA
(Sanskrit for "union," related to our "yoke.") Conquering the self is known as
Yoga, the esoteric Eastern teaching of human perfection that lies behind all
occult wisdom. It is a thread that binds the individual to the "Supreme Reality"
(or, as Watts would say, "The Supreme Identity"). In the Upanishads is written:
"By Vayu, the Inner Controller, as by a thread, O Gautama, are this world, the
other world, and all beings held together.
"Quite so... Now describe the Inner Controller.
"He who inhabits the earth, yet is within the earth, whom the earth does not
know, whose body the earth is, and who controls the earth from within -- he is
your Self, the Inner Controller, The Immortal."
A teacher of Yoga is called a guru and a student is called a chela, a
practitioner of Yoga is called a Yogi or Yogin. Yoga reveals the beginning
yogi's weaknesses and also what transcendent strengths are available to him.
There are 12 essential types of Yoga, here presented in arbitrary order:
Hatha-Yoga (The Breath: physical vitality). Bhakti-Yoga (Loving: The way of
Devotion of Religion). Shakti-Yoga (Energy: The way of nature). Mantra-Yoga
(Sound: Power through sound vibrations). Laya-Yoga (The Will: Mental powers).
Yantra-Yoga (Formation: Powers through the use of geometric forms). Dhyana-Yoga
(Thinking: Way of thought). Raja-Yoga (Methodology: Power to discriminate and
develop consciousness). Jnana-Yoga (Knowledge: Intellectual power). Kundalini-
Yoga (Kundalini energy: Development of psychic nerve energy). Samadhi-Yoga (The
Self: The way of ecstasy). Karma-Yoga (Action: The way of right action). To
these we must also add the esoteric Martya Yoga (willed death).
------------------------------------------------------------------------
YUGGOTH
Yug is an age or aeon, from Sanskrit Yuga. Yuggoth is a Hebrew plural form,
making little sense. One of Grant's terms. According to the Necronomicon, it
refers to the planet Pluto. It is really one of the Great Old Ones. Grant
connects it to the qabalistic Kether, which is a liberty of his. Pluto may
perhaps be assigned to Kether, but Yuggoth as Kether is highly questionable.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
Z
------------------------------------------------------------------------
222
ZAMRADIEL
The 17th kala of the dark tarot does not indicate choice, but rather the total
abandonment and capitulation into coitus, the sword of zayin penetrating the
yoni of Qulielfi. It is the triumph of the libido over wisdom.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZEROETH LEVEL
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZETA RETICULI
The star system whence most American ufo's are said to derive.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZETESIS
In the Osirian Mysteries this is the search for the mutilated God. Later, a
"seeker" amongst the Pyrrhonists was a "zetetic." Zetetic now refers to
discovering through the process of asking questions. Zetetronic refers to
computer-generated questions.
It should be noted that The Flat Earth Society also refers to itself as "Our
Society of Zetetics" which is opposed to science and irrational theories,
favoring instead technology and invention.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZEZIROTH
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZOMBIE
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZONEI
223
The most ancient gods (the "Seven Stars" of astrology). These are also sometimes
referred to as "The Star Gates." (See ARRA.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZOROASTRIANISM
Derives from ancient Persian fire-worship, also called Mazdaism. Zoroaster lived
and died approximately 1000 B.C.E. Zoroaster taught the fire of purification in
which is found the joy of the Supreme. The temple fires were kept burning in
honor of the God of Light. The universe is engaged in a struggle between two
Gods, Ahura-Mazda, God of light and goodness and Ahriman, God of darkness and
evil. Zarathustra, unlike the Gnostics, taught that the world was basically good
because created by Ahura Mazda, only later corrupted by Ahriman. Human beings
must chose between the path of Truth (Asha) or follow the path of the Lie. And
at death, we must pass over a sifting bridge whereby the souls of light are
separated from the souls of darkness. Mithra is the Christ of Zoroastrianism. Z
differs from Xtianity in that Mithra doesn't redeem us, no one redeems us. We
are redeemed only by our own actions. (See APOCALYPSE.)
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZOS
(See KIA.) The "entire" body (as opposed to the ego or "eye"), including its
range of consciousness in the world. (Austin Osman Spare's Magic). It is
symbolized by the hand, as the kia is the eye, thus joining sight and touch. Zos
vel Thanatos was Spare's magical name.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZOTHRYIA
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZPG
"Zero Population Growth" is an idea whose time has come. What has that to do
with M/magic(k)? Nothing more than that any practitioner who ignores the state
of the world and attempts to avoid controversy out of cowardice, is a charlatan
and an ass. The population of the earth will have reached 10 billion within
another decade. The beautiful forests and magnificent animals that our
grandparents knew are gone forever. Human life grows cheaper with each mewling,
puking infant that is born. Anti-abortionists and anti- homosexuals are doing
the world a monstrous disservice by pushing their arrogant self-interest
propaganda. Those who think that restricting birth is "inhuman" or draconian
should be warned that ZPG and family Planning are conservative organizations by
any standard. There are far more radical forces on the hell-horizon, growing
rapidly in imminence every day: Radical Population Reduction ("Reaper," for
short), to mention one on the edge of appearance.
To those who point out that had my mother felt as I do, I'd not have been born
I'm bound to say that when I was born there were not yet quite two billion human
souls on this planet and the dead still outnumbered the living. Moreover, my
genetic material ends with me. I have always practiced that essentially
ontological humility which is preached in Isaiah 54: "Sing, O barren, thou that
didst not bear..." If I have not the pride to perpetuate my own flesh, why
should I condone the arrogance of others?
224
As for those, finally, who believe that natural patenting should be the divine
right of every moronic pimp and cheap tart, rather than an earned and rare
privilege, and who argue that anyone who tries to "play God" and set hirself up
as a population damper can only be a "Fascist," such fools should be reminded
that it hardly matters whether a Fascist, a Saint, a Yuppie or Zippy the Pinhead
takes the job at this late date. If everyone's genes are to be sacrificed to the
common good and if the said "God-Player" is himself free of issue, it matters
little who rules. In any case, any form of birth control, no matter how unjust
or extreme, is preferable to that tyranny exercised so criminally now by those
who, in their filth, stupidity, rut and obnoxious lust, blindly and selfishly
birth endlessly forth their disgusting progeny in chaotic, cancerous growth,
shoving and forcing the guilty in with the innocent in this already over-stuffed
planetary ratbox of accelerating madness and asphyxiation.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZURVAN
Persian god of time and father of both Ahura Mazda and Angra Mainyu. Called
"Aion" by the Neo-platonists, according to Drury.
------------------------------------------------------------------------
ZUVUYA
José Argüelles' word that he says is what the Maya called "the memory circuit
hotline." Earth lies within this galaxy's "experimental zone." The Maya really
are galactic travellers who influenced early historical and evolutionary
advances by, amongst other things, offering mankind the psychedelic mushroom,
"Flesh of the Gods."
In 631 B.C.E. Pacal Votan, Galactic Agent 13 66 56, came to our world, where he
remained for 52 years, as supervisor of human evolution. In 550 B.C.E. the Maya
sent down another galactic scout (Buddha) who lived 52 years. Finally Kukulkan
(Quetzacoatl) was sent. He also lived 52 years. He prophesied that the 13 heaven
cycles would wind down in 1519 (the very year, it turned out afterwards, that
murderous, enslaving Cortez arrived), whereupon nine 52-year hell cycles would
ensue. In 1987, with the Harmonic Convergence, the final hell cycle was
completed. In the aftermath of the hell cycles we see that "man is a cancer of
the earth." His numbers must be reduced dramatically and permanently. The earth
is a hologram of the sun and we are a hologram of the earth. Each of us must
become a Mayan and a galactic recruit to this end. A mere twenty-five years are
left for us to ready the earth for its transformation or it will be consigned to
the rubbish heap of failed experiments.
At the center of the galaxy is Hunab Ku, broadcasting beams of different
programs, like a radio station. Earth will phase out of this particular ray in
2012 C.E. Mayans call this the "acceleration synchronization beam." At the end,
human activity is accelerated exponentially until it reaches a peak and
synchronization occurs. Everyone then becomes aware of everyone else as one
mind.
Says Hubatz Men, a young postmodern, contemporary Mayan who gives lectures
through the southwest, "Zuvuya is the circuit by which everything returns to
itself. Everything is the memory of itself."
------------------------------------------------------------------------
225